Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n apostle_n dictate_v great_a 57 3 2.1554 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A93131 The Quakers wilde questions objected against the ministers of the Gospel, and many sacred acts and offices of religion. With brief answers thereunto. Together with a discourse [brace] 1. Of the Holy Spirit of God, his impressions and workings on the souls of men. 2. Of divine revelation, mediate and immediate. 3. Of error, heresie, and schism: the nature, kindes, causes, reasons, and dangers thereof: with directions for avoiding the same. All very seasonable for these times. / By R. Sherlock, B D. at Borwick-Hal in Lancashire. Sherlock, R. (Richard), 1612-1689. 1655 (1655) Wing S3255; Thomason E858_1; ESTC R203556 215,435 300

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

impression_n and_o working_n on_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o so_o man_n may_v have_v a_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o ever_o bless_a person_n of_o the_o the_o godhead_n so_o much_o mistake_v and_o his_o sacred_a name_n to_o the_o high_a offence_n of_o his_o majesty_n so_o much_o profane_v by_o impudent_a and_o false_a pretence_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o respect_n both_o of_o his_o person_n and_o office_n be_v by_o the_o nicene_n creed_n thus_o clear_o and_o full_o set_v down_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o lord_n and_o giver_n of_o life_n who_o proceed_v both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n who_o together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v worship_v and_o glorify_v who_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n to_o give_v you_o my_o comment_n upon_o this_o text_n be_v but_o to_o hold_v a_o candle_n to_o the_o sun_n the_o doctrine_n deliver_v be_v so_o clear_a and_o perspicuous_a all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v upon_o this_o article_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n be_v reducible_a to_o four_o head_n 1._o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o himself_o 2._o of_o his_o office_n or_o working_n on_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n 3._o of_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o true_a from_o false_a spirit_n 4._o of_o the_o mean_n to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o two_o first_o be_v doctrinal_a and_o speculative_a point_n for_o the_o rectify_v and_o fit_v the_o understanding_n right_o to_o conceive_v and_o believe_v aright_o this_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n the_o two_o last_o be_v practical_a and_o applicatory_a for_o the_o guidance_n of_o our_o action_n and_o christian_a performance_n according_a to_o this_o belief_n and_o may_v this_o ever_o bless_a spirit_n of_o god_n inspire_v and_o direct_v i_o to_o write_v and_o all_o that_o read_v to_o understand_v the_o divine_a and_o celestial_a doctrine_n both_o of_o his_o person_n and_o office_n to_o the_o illumination_n and_o sanctification_n of_o our_o soul_n here_o as_o the_o way_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n hereafter_o a_o discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o himself_o the_o more_o clear_o to_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o use_v the_o light_n of_o some_o distinction_n for_o so_o the_o naked_a and_o plain_a truth_n of_o any_o thing_n be_v most_o clear_o and_o distinct_o see_v when_o namely_o it_o be_v divide_v and_o distinguish_v from_o its_o conjunction_n with_o other_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o or_o the_o like_a name_n and_o nature_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o old_a maxim_n qui_fw-la bene_fw-la distinguit_fw-la bene_fw-la docet_fw-la the_o way_n to_o teach_v well_o or_o clear_o to_o deliver_v any_o truth_n be_v right_o to_o distinguish_v that_o truth_n from_o other_o truth_n that_o be_v of_o near_a affinity_n thereunto_o either_o in_o name_n or_o nature_n or_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v the_o language_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n right_o to_o divide_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n 2_o tim._n 2.15_o 2.15_o 2_o tim._n 2.15_o which_o be_v one_o of_o those_o many_o qualification_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n wherewithal_o they_o be_v immediate_o inspire_v by_o this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n for_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n intimate_v in_o that_o he_o descend_v from_o heaven_n upon_o they_o in_o cleave_a or_o divide_v tongue_n distinction_n 1_o and_o first_o that_o we_o mistake_v not_o the_o creature_n for_o the_o creator_n god_n over_o all_o bless_a for_o ever_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o a_o spirit_n be_v either_o create_v or_o increate_v or_o more_o plain_o sometime_o the_o word_n spirit_n be_v in_o holy_a scripture_n apply_v to_o the_o creature_n sometime_o to_o the_o creator_n there_o be_v several_a kind_n of_o create_a spirit_n as_o 1._o those_o glorious_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o high_a heaven_n the_o holy_a and_o bless_a angel_n 1.14_o heb._n 1.14_o be_v they_o not_o all_o minister_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n heb._n 1.14_o 2._o those_o curse_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o nether_a hell_n the_o chain_a devil_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o apostle_n style_v they_o ephes_n 6.12_o ephes_n 6.12_o 6.12_o spiritual_a wickedness_n or_o wicked_a spirit_n 3._o the_o soul_n of_o man_n which_o quicken_v and_o enliven_v these_o our_o frail_a and_o mortal_a body_n every_o man_n be_v compose_v of_o two_o nature_n a_o body_n and_o a_o soul_n 2.7_o gen._n 2.7_o or_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n gen._n 2.7_o and_o the_o lord_n god_n form_v man_n of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n mean_v his_o body_n and_o breathe_v into_o his_o nostril_n the_o breath_n of_o life_n mean_v his_o soul_n and_o so_o man_n become_v a_o live_a soul_n or_o live_v by_o his_o foul_a or_o spirit_n create_v or_o infuse_v by_o god_n into_o his_o earthly_a body_n 4._o the_o life_n and_o animation_n of_o each_o sensitive_a creature_n therefore_o we_o read_v 150.6_o psal_n 150.6_o psal_n 150.6_o let_v every_o thing_n that_o have_v breath_n or_o spirit_n praise_v the_o lord_n all_o these_o be_v several_a kind_n of_o create_a spirit_n some_o more_o some_o less_o pure_a fine_a and_o spiritual_a but_o there_o be_v a_o increated_a spirit_n also_o who_o be_v neither_o make_v nor_o create_v in_o himself_o be_v the_o great_a maker_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o spirit_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n who_o be_v the_o prime_a fountain_n and_o original_a of_o all_o being_n be_v so_o eminent_a and_o transcendent_a a_o be_v that_o as_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o he_o only_o know_v himself_o nor_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o we_o or_o any_o creature_n who_o derive_v their_o be_v from_o he_o to_o attain_v the_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o be_v he_o please_v in_o his_o holy_a word_n wherein_o he_o reveal_v himself_o unto_o we_o to_o describe_v himself_o by_o the_o name_n and_o property_n of_o his_o excellent_a and_o most_o eminent_a kind_n of_o creature_n which_o be_v spirit_n so_o that_o god_n be_v term_v a_o spirit_n analogical_o because_o angel_n or_o spirit_n be_v the_o pure_a fine_a quick_a and_o most_o active_a and_o intelligent_a being_n but_o that_o we_o may_v not_o rank_a god_n with_o angel_n or_o spirit_n for_o he_o have_v no_o match_n or_o equal_a we_o must_v learn_v this_o one_o general_a rule_n in_o divinity_n whatsoever_o be_v speak_v of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o withal_o be_v applyable_a to_o any_o creature_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o god_n eminenter_fw-la by_o way_n of_o eminency_n and_o transcendency_n as_o the_o prototype_n and_o grand_a exemplar_n of_o that_o perfection_n which_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o creature_n as_o here_o angel_n be_v spirit_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v spirit_n but_o god_n be_v not_o a_o spirit_n as_o they_o be_v spirit_n for_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n the_o original_a and_o all_o perfect_a pattern_n of_o the_o perfection_n and_o purity_n of_o all_o create_a spirit_n therefore_o term_v the_o god_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o all_o flesh_n 16._o numb_a 22_o 16._o numb_a 22.16_o and_o the_o father_n of_o spirit_n 12.9_o heb._n 12.9_o heb._n 12.9_o distinction_n 2_o that_o we_o may_v according_a to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n worship_v one_o god_n in_o trinity_n and_o the_o trinity_n in_o unity_n neither_o confound_v the_o person_n nor_o divide_v the_o substance_n we_o must_v right_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o subsistence_n and_o the_o person_n or_o betwixt_o the_o essence_n and_o substance_n of_o god_n which_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v remember_v and_o observe_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o hand_n for_o sometime_o god_n be_v term_v a_o spirit_n essential_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o essence_n nature_n or_o godhead_n sometime_o personal_o 4.24_o job_n 4.24_o the_o term_n be_v apply_v to_o this_o or_o that_o particular_a person_n of_o the_o godhead_n 1._o essential_o joh._n 4.24_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n that_o be_v he_o be_v such_o a_o god_n who_o essence_n nature_n or_o be_v be_v eminent_o and_o transcendent_o pure_a and_o spiritual_a 2._o personal_o mat._n 3.16_o mat._n 4.1_o ephes_n 4.30_o so_o here_o and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n the_o term_n be_v peculiar_o appropriate_v and_o apply_v to_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n who_o be_v term_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a spirit_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o ghost_n and_o spirit_n be_v the_o same_o the_o one_o a_o old_a english_a word_n the_o other_o a_o latin_a this_o name_n and_o attribute_v the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o it_o be_v particular_o apply_v to_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n express_v and_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o his_o person_n and_o office_n his_o personal_a subsistence_n in_o himself_o and_o his_o office_n or_o work_n
they_o to_o bear_v the_o burden_n with_o he_o as_o to_o the_o administration_n of_o justice_n among_o the_o people_n even_o the_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n understanding_n and_o knowledge_n impartial_o and_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n to_o execute_v justice_n and_o judgement_n so_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v rest_v upon_o he_o isai_n 11.2_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o so_o it_o follow_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n the_o spirit_n of_o counsel_n and_o strength_n the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o then_o that_o be_v a_o wise_a man_n may_v be_v say_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o scripture_n to_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o he_o or_o to_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o the_o wisdom_n he_o have_v be_v from_o god_n spirit_n it_o come_v down_o from_o above_o and_o the_o mean_n to_o fetch_v it_o thence_o be_v holy_a prayer_n if_o any_o man_n lack_v wisdom_n let_v he_o ask_v of_o god_n who_o give_v etc._n etc._n jam._n 1.5_o so_o the_o wise_a of_o man_n obtain_v wisdom_n 1_o king_n 3.9_o his_o prayer_n which_o bring_v she_o down_o from_o heaven_n be_v record_v wisd_v 9_o and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o counsel_n godliness_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o these_o grace_n be_v term_v from_o the_o cause_n and_o author_n of_o they_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n the_o spirit_n of_o godliness_n etc._n etc._n so_o zach._n 12.10_o i_o will_v pour_v upon_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n that_o be_v by_o my_o spirit_n i_o will_v enrich_v their_o soul_n with_o the_o grace_n of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n to_o be_v frequent_a and_o fervent_a in_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n admonition_n ephes_n 6.18_o pray_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n in_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o fervency_n and_o godly_a zeal_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n or_o spirit_n but_o also_o pray_v thus_o in_o or_o from_o the_o powerful_a influence_n of_o god_n spirit_n who_o inflame_v our_o own_o cold_a frosty_a devotion_n and_o assist_v our_o frailty_n in_o prayer_n we_o pray_v in_o the_o spirit_n when_o both_o our_o prayer_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o our_o spirit_n be_v also_o teach_v and_o sanctify_v by_o god_n spirit_n as_o rom._n 8.15_o for_o you_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n unto_o fear_n but_o you_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n clamamus_fw-la nos_fw-la say_v augustine_n great_a aug._n lib._n de_fw-fr cor_fw-la &_o great_a we_o cry_v not_o the_o spirit_n but_o gal._n 4.6_o it_o be_v say_v the_o spirit_n within_o we_o and_o because_o you_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o your_o heart_n which_o cry_v abba_n father_n 11._o nos_fw-la clamamus_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o spiritu_fw-la ipso_fw-la scil_n diffundente_fw-la charitatem_fw-la in_o cordibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la sine_fw-la quâ_fw-la quicunque_fw-la clamat_fw-la inaniter_fw-la clamat_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la dom._n sec_fw-la matt_n ser_n 11._o non_fw-la hic_fw-la ait_fw-la etc._n etc._n say_v the_o father_n he_o say_v not_o here_o as_o in_o the_o former_a place_n by_o who_o we_o cry_v but_o the_o spirit_n himself_o cry_v quo_fw-la efficitur_fw-la ut_fw-la clamemus_fw-la nos_fw-la for_o what_o else_o be_v clamans_fw-la spiritus_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la but_o clamantes_fw-la nos_fw-la faciens_fw-la the_o spirit_n cry_v in_o our_o heart_n be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o he_o make_v we_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o cry_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n and_o pour_v forth_o our_o soul_n before_o he_o in_o prayer_n which_o be_v also_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o misapply_v text_n against_o form_n of_o prayer_n rom._n 8.26_o the_o spirit_n likewise_o help_v our_o infirmity_n for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o as_o we_o ought_v but_o the_o spirit_n itself_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o with_o groan_n which_o can_v be_v express_v we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n aug._n aug._n neither_o can_v they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o to_o who_o he_o say_v thus_o but_o such_o and_o so_o press_v be_v our_o infirmity_n that_o first_o many_o time_n we_o know_v not_o what_o to_o ask_v for_o in_o relation_n to_o our_o body_n and_o outward_a estate_n sometime_o even_o pray_v for_o what_o be_v harmful_a or_o at_o least_o not_o at_o all_o profitable_a for_o we_o and_o this_o infirmity_n of_o we_o the_o holy_a ghost_n help_v by_o the_o precept_n and_o promise_n and_o form_n of_o prayer_n record_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o dictate_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o many_o time_n 2._o we_o know_v not_o how_o to_o ask_v for_o what_o be_v needful_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o dulness_n and_o deadness_n and_o frosty_a coldness_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o this_o infirmity_n the_o spirit_n help_v by_o quicken_a our_o devotion_n as_o it_o follow_v the_o spirit_n make_v request_n for_o we_o presb_n aug._n epist_n ed_z sixt._n presb_n quid_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la interpellat_n nisi_fw-la interpellare_fw-la nos_fw-la facit_fw-la what_o else_o can_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o the_o spirit_n make_v intercession_n for_o we_o but_o that_o he_o make_v we_o to_o intercede_v for_o ourselves_o by_o his_o grace_n secret_o and_o unspeakable_o enliven_a our_o devotion_n so_o that_o even_o with_o penitent_a and_o fervent_a sigh_n and_o holy_a breathe_n after_o god_n we_o pour_v forth_o our_o prayer_n before_o he_o so_o mat._n 10.20_o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o father_n which_o speak_v in_o you_o where_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n with_o we_o be_v so_o express_v say_v augustine_n ut_fw-la ipse_fw-la facere_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quod_fw-la ut_fw-la faciamus_fw-la facit_fw-la he_o be_v say_v to_o do_v that_o himself_o in_o we_o which_o by_o his_o grace_n he_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o do_v as_o therefore_o no_o man_n can_v be_v wise_a without_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n nor_o know_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n nor_o godly_a without_o the_o spirit_n of_o goldiness_n nor_o charitable_a without_o the_o spirit_n of_o love_n so_o no_o man_n can_v pray_v as_o he_o ought_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n not_o that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o kind_n of_o spirit_n as_o these_o but_o all_o these_o work_v one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n divide_v to_o every_o man_n several_o as_o he_o will_v 1_o cor._n 12.11_o from_o the_o meaning_n of_o all_o which_o place_n and_o many_o more_o which_o may_v be_v allege_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o by_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o be_v not_o mean_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o himself_o but_o in_o his_o grace_n aug._n aug._n for_o how_o can_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o be_v say_v the_o father_n one_o perfect_a and_o eternal_a beatitude_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v say_v in_o himself_o or_o according_a to_o himself_o personal_o to_o speak_v to_o sigh_v to_o cry_v to_o pray_v in_o we_o no_o otherwise_o sure_o but_o as_o by_o his_o gift_n and_o grace_n we_o be_v enable_v to_o speak_v the_o truth_n to_o sigh_v and_o breath_n after_o god_n to_o cry_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o fervency_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o devout_o to_o pour_v forth_o our_o prayer_n before_o he_o chap._n ii_o of_o the_o working_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n upon_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n general_n 2_o the_o impression_n or_o working_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v various_a and_o divers_a every_o thought_n motion_n and_o desire_n every_o aptitude_n proneness_n and_o inclination_n every_o faculty_n power_n and_o ability_n conduce_v either_o to_o the_o good_a of_o ourselves_o or_o other_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o distribute_v his_o several_a qualification_n to_o several_a person_n and_o that_o several_o even_o in_o several_a way_n and_o kind_n to_o some_o in_o one_o kind_n to_o other_o in_o another_o to_o some_o more_o to_o some_o less_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n ephes_n 4.7_o loc._n per_fw-la hoc_fw-la tollitur_fw-la error_n attribuentium_fw-la diversitatem_fw-la donorum_fw-la fato_fw-la vel_fw-la constellationibus_fw-la vel_fw-la humano_fw-la merito_fw-la &_o non_fw-la divinae_fw-la voluntati_fw-la sicut_fw-la primae_fw-la causae_fw-la lyr._n in_o loc._n or_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o measure_n whereby_o he_o distribute_v his_o gift_n be_v no_o other_o
from_o god_n he_o may_v fancy_v a_o call_n from_o above_o when_o it_o be_v only_o a_o noise_n in_o his_o own_o head_n or_o a_o deceitful_a echo_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n therefore_o we_o must_v know_v this_o call_n from_o god_n to_o so_o high_a and_o honourable_a a_o office_n as_o to_o be_v ordain_v for_o man_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n be_v either_o extraordinary_a or_o ordinary_a the_o first_o beginning_n of_o a_o last_a necessity_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o it_o be_v make_v ordinary_a in_o succession_n and_o by_o the_o last_a continuation_n of_o a_o fix_a and_o determinate_a ministry_n as_o adam_n at_o the_o first_o be_v extraordinary_o form_v immediate_o create_v by_o god_n himself_o but_o all_o mankind_n since_o ordinary_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o parent_n so_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n who_o receive_v the_o first_o issue_n of_o evangelical_n ministry_n be_v extraordinary_o call_v but_o all_o that_o have_v succeed_v they_o have_v be_v admit_v by_o a_o ordinary_a vocation_n because_o the_o succession_n be_v but_o of_o ordinary_a necessity_n now_o for_o any_o man_n to_o pretend_v a_o extraordinary_a call_n and_o immediate_a from_o god_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n be_v to_o pretend_v also_o to_o a_o new_a gospel_n and_o new_a revelation_n distinct_a from_o what_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v and_o such_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o dictate_v of_o seduce_a spirit_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n and_o indeed_o such_o a_o pretence_n of_o immediate_a and_o extraordinary_a power_n and_o commission_n from_o above_o can_v in_o a_o fix_a and_o settle_a ministry_n by_o ordinary_a mean_n have_v no_o other_o end_n and_o issue_n but_o to_o belie_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o cozen_v the_o too_o credulous_a soul_n of_o the_o people_n when_o ever_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o it_o nor_o be_v it_o any_o other_o but_o a_o mere_a pretence_n of_o folly_n to_o expect_v or_o rely_v upon_o a_o extraordinary_a call_n or_o ability_n by_o immediate_a infusion_n from_o heaven_n without_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n as_o to_o the_o ministerial_a function_n since_o by_o ordinary_a and_o common_a mean_n they_o may_v be_v supply_v for_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o we_o shall_v expect_v man_n to_o be_v create_v and_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n immediate_o as_o adam_n be_v at_o the_o first_o or_o be_v so_o form_v to_o be_v feed_v and_o nourish_v with_o food_n from_o heaven_n without_o any_o care_n or_o industry_n for_o provision_n here_o upon_o earth_n chap._n vi_o of_o ministerial_a gift_n ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a this_o call_n to_o the_o ministerial_a office_n under_o the_o gospel_n both_o extraordinary_a in_o the_o apostle_n and_o ordinary_a in_o their_o successor_n as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o a_o grand_a inestimable_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o prime_n of_o they_o confer_v by_o our_o lord_n in_o his_o triumph_n over_o our_o ghostly_a foe_n and_o victorious_a ascension_n into_o heaven_n 4.11_o ephes_n 4.11_o for_o than_o he_o give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n some_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n so_o it_o have_v also_o other_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n attend_v as_o necessary_a contributaries_n to_o the_o accomplishment_n thereof_o that_o this_o gift_n may_v be_v complete_v and_o fit_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 12._o verse_n 12._o through_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n which_o proportionable_a to_o the_o twofold_a calling_n be_v either_o extraordinary_a or_o ordinary_a also_o extraordinary_a they_o be_v even_o plentiful_a and_o miraculous_a in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o apostle_n viz._n in_o such_o a_o measure_n and_o after_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o no_o mortal_a man_n can_v ever_o hope_v for_o since_o and_o very_o good_a reason_n there_o be_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o for_o the_o apostle_n charge_n be_v much_o great_a and_o their_o task_n more_o difficult_a than_o any_o man_n either_o be_v or_o can_v be_v since_o they_o have_v all_o mankind_n to_o instruct_v and_o principle_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n the_o stiff_a obdurate_a and_o incredulous_a jew_n to_o convert_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o bring_v in_o both_o the_o rude_a barbarian_n and_o learned_a grecian_n to_o master_n and_o subdue_v the_o whole_a world_n be_v their_o diocese_n the_o world_n sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n devote_v to_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n now_o to_o master_n and_o subdue_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o to_o turn_v all_o man_n from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n to_o the_o live_a god_n 26.18_o act_n 26.18_o require_v sure_a gift_n and_o endowment_n more_o than_o ordinary_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a even_o such_o as_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a and_o whereof_o none_o of_o their_o successor_n none_o that_o ever_o follow_v they_o since_o in_o the_o ministerial_a office_n can_v possible_o hope_v to_o be_v partaker_n for_o all_o minister_n since_o have_v but_o a_o handful_n of_o man_n in_o comparison_n to_o deal_v withal_o and_o these_o break_v to_o their_o hand_n be_v bear_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o holy_a christian_a religion_n as_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o such_o extraordinary_a qualification_n so_o neither_o do_v we_o the_o best_a of_o we_o do_v not_o dare_v not_o pretend_v either_o to_o such_o sublime_a and_o eminent_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o to_o any_o such_o immediate_a and_o extraordinary_a infusion_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n the_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o the_o apostle_n differ_v from_o those_o of_o their_o successor_n in_o two_o respect_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o measure_n or_o extent_n of_o they_o 2._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o acquisition_n first_o for_o the_o measure_n the_o apostle_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n act._n 2.4_o fill_v as_o full_a as_o they_o can_v hold_v 2.4_o act._n 2.4_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o as_o many_o eminent_a gift_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o apostolical_a function_n as_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o but_o we_o even_o the_o best_a and_o able_a of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v not_o so_o full_a but_o they_o can_v hold_v much_o more_o there_o be_v be_v a_o baptism_n with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o be_v at_o the_o best_a 1.5_o act._n 1.5_o but_o a_o rantism_n they_o be_v wash_v wash_v as_o it_o be_v all_o all_o over_o with_o the_o spirit_n we_o but_o sprinkle_v with_o his_o gift_n they_o have_v the_o anoint_v of_o the_o holy_a one_o more_o plentiful_o we_o in_o a_o small_a scantling_n they_o be_v anoint_v above_o far_o above_o all_o their_o fellow_n and_o successor_n who_o receive_v ordinary_o but_o a_o hin_n to_o their_o epha_n 133.2_o psal_n 133.2_o their_o unction_n be_v like_o the_o ointment_n pour_v upon_o the_o head_n that_o run_v down_o to_o the_o beard_n and_o all_o other_o since_o but_o like_o the_o thin_a dropping_n upon_o the_o skirt_n of_o the_o garment_n and_o from_o hence_o we_o may_v observe_v with_o s._n hierome_n theo._n scio_fw-la i_o aliter_fw-la habere_fw-la apestolos_fw-la aliter_fw-la reliquos_fw-la tractatores_fw-la illos_fw-la semper_fw-la vera_fw-la di●…re_fw-la istos_fw-la ut_fw-la hemines_fw-la in_o quibuldam_n aberrare_fw-la hier._n ad_fw-la theo._n that_o the_o apostle_n excel_v all_o other_o minister_n in_o this_o respect_n also_o that_o they_o be_v so_o guide_v and_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n that_o all_o truth_n and_o nothing_o but_o truth_n do_v at_o all_o time_n flow_v from_o they_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o function_n but_o all_o other_o minister_n must_v confess_v in_o all_o humility_n that_o as_o man_n they_o have_v their_o fail_n and_o mistake_n in_o one_o respect_n or_o other_o second_o for_o the_o manner_n the_o apostle_n be_v endue_v with_o their_o fullness_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n miraculous_o their_o inspiration_n do_v public_o and_o visible_o appear_v to_o be_v by_o miracle_n and_o immediate_a from_o heaven_n act._n 2._o but_o we_o as_o we_o can_v pretend_v unto_o no_o such_o extraordinary_a gift_n so_o neither_o do_v we_o pretend_v unto_o or_o depend_v upon_o any_o such_o extraordinary_a and_o immediate_a infusion_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n but_o ordinary_o &_o in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n even_o by_o much_o study_n labour_n and_o industry_n in_o the_o way_n of_o wisdom_n learning_n and_o knowledge_n we_o do_v acquire_v our_o qualification_n according_a to_o the_o command_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o timothy_n we_o study_v for_o they_o 2_o tim._n 2.15_o study_v to_o show_v thyself_o approve_v a_o workman_n that_o need_v not_o to_o be_v ashamed_a right_o divide_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n 2.15_o 2_o tim._n 2.15_o and_o yet_o timothy_n sure_o have_v less_o need_n to_o study_v for_o his_o gift_n than_o any_o of_o we_o as_o have_v more_o of_o
admit_v at_o any_o hand_n of_o other_o spirit_n then_o their_o own_o of_o other_o truth_n then_o the_o vision_n of_o their_o own_o head_n or_o of_o other_o direction_n than_o the_o motion_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n reject_v renounce_v and_o cry_v down_o all_o but_o what_o themselves_o call_v holy_a with_o the_o donatist_n of_o old_a quod_fw-la volumus_fw-la sanctum_fw-la est_fw-la that_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v holy_a right_a and_o true_a shall_v be_v so_o and_o nothing_o else_o it_o be_v the_o very_a ground_n whereupon_o this_o last_o upstart_n crew_n of_o quaker_n build_v all_o their_o resolution_n and_o strange_a fanatic_a opinion_n and_o heresy_n even_o that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o light_n within_o we_o this_o say_v they_o be_v the_o only_a judge_n we_o must_v follow_v the_o pilot_n we_o must_v steer_v by_o the_o voice_n whereunto_o we_o must_v give_v ear_n the_o only_a sanctuary_n to_o which_o we_o must_v fly_v for_o resolution_n never_o remember_v how_o this_o sanctuary_n be_v profane_v by_o continual_a act_n of_o spiritual_a fornication_n or_o idolatry_n therein_o commit_v while_o in_o stead_n and_o even_o in_o opposition_n to_o god_n and_o spirit_n of_o all_o truth_n they_o enshrine_v and_o idolise_v their_o own_o fond_a vain_a and_o lie_v imagination_n which_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n call_v the_o vanity_n and_o deceitfulness_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n jer._n 14.14_o 14.4_o jer._n 14.4_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o i_o the_o prophet_n pprophecy_n lie_v in_o my_o name_n i_o have_v not_o send_v they_o neither_o do_v i_o command_v they_o neither_o speak_v i_o unto_o they_o but_o they_o prophesy_v unto_o you_o a_o false_a vision_n and_o divination_n and_o vanity_n and_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n it_o be_v undoubted_o necessary_a for_o every_o man_n to_o be_v persuade_v in_o his_o own_o conscience_n both_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o believe_v and_o of_o the_o justice_n and_o equity_n of_o what_o he_o undertake_v but_o yet_o this_o persuasion_n of_o the_o conscience_n or_o the_o follow_v the_o light_n within_o we_o or_o the_o dictate_v of_o our_o own_o spirit_n be_v not_o the_o first_o ground_n and_o prime_a rule_n either_o of_o our_o faith_n or_o of_o our_o work_n for_o the_o conscience_n itself_o must_v be_v regulate_v or_o else_o it_o will_v often_o prove_v a_o false_a witness_n and_o most_o especial_o in_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n for_o as_o conscience_n be_v be_v set_v betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o so_o it_o must_v speak_v from_o god_n unto_o we_o and_o our_o spirit_n or_o the_o light_n within_o we_o must_v be_v guide_v by_o the_o light_n of_o god_n spirit_n shine_v in_o his_o word_n s._n paul_n think_v very_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v many_o thing_n against_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n this_o persuasion_n arise_v from_o the_o light_n within_o he_o 26.9,11_o act._n 26.9,11_o and_o hereupon_o he_o make_v havoc_n of_o the_o church_n which_o no_o man_n that_o be_v not_o infatuate_a will_v say_v be_v either_o fit_a or_o lawful_a to_o be_v do_v it_o be_v first_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n to_o betray_v his_o master_n joh._n 13.2_o such_o be_v the_o light_n within_o he_o and_o according_a to_o this_o light_n he_o walk_v till_o at_o last_o he_o hang_v himself_o and_o this_o delusion_n of_o man_n own_o spirit_n follow_v the_o deceitful_a dictate_v of_o his_o own_o heart_n be_v seldom_o mention_v in_o holy_a scripture_n without_o heavy_a threat_n denounce_v both_o against_o such_o deluder_n and_o all_o that_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v delude_v by_o they_o 13.3_o ezek._n 13.3_o as_o you_o may_v read_v jer._n 14.15,16_o and_o again_o ezek._n 13.3_o wo_n unto_o the_o foolish_a prophet_n which_o follow_v their_o own_o spirit_n and_o have_v see_v nothing_o nothing_o but_o what_o their_o own_o foolish_a spirit_n dictate_v to_o they_o such_o be_v note_v by_o the_o apostle_n also_o 2.18_o gol._n 2.18_o col._n 2.18_o who_o intrude_v into_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v net_n see_v or_o which_o they_o understand_v not_o be_v vain_o puff_v up_o by_o their_o fleshly_a mind_n gloss_n gloss_n sensualitatis_fw-la non_fw-la rationis_fw-la follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o sense_n rather_o than_o of_o right_a reason_n and_o in_o this_o place_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v remarkable_a for_o even_o by_o that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o dictate_v of_o a_o man_n own_o carnal_a and_o sensual_a spirit_n and_o the_o impression_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n for_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o mind_n the_o dictate_v of_o the_o fleshly_a spirit_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d inflatio_fw-la a_o puff_v up_o but_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d afflatio_fw-la a_o inspiration_n indeed_o but_o without_o inflation_n or_o puff_v up_o the_o heavenly_a wind_n of_o god_n spirit_n may_v fill_v but_o it_o never_o puff_v up_o or_o swell_v the_o heart_n but_o rather_o humble_v and_o abase_v the_o spirit_n of_o man_n which_o be_v most_o conformable_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o own_o command_n mat._n 11.29_o learn_v of_o i_o for_o i_o be_o meek_a and_o lowly_a in_o heart_n 11.29_o mat._n 11.29_o the_o mind_n that_o be_v either_o puff_v up_o with_o pride_n vainglory_n and_o false_a conceit_a excellency_n in_o itself_o or_o that_o swell_v with_o malice_n hatred_n or_o envy_v towards_o other_o be_v not_o inspire_v with_o the_o celestial_a breath_n or_o spirit_n of_o the_o holy_a jesus_n but_o follow_v its_o own_o carnal_a and_o corrupt_a dictate_v and_o conceit_n be_v thereunto_o raise_v and_o move_v by_o that_o grand_a impostor_n the_o spirit_n of_o delusion_n beside_o man_v own_o carnal_a spirit_n there_o be_v also_o a_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n oppose_v and_o poison_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n spirit_n the_o apostle_n distinguish_v and_o oppose_v these_o each_o to_o other_o 2.12_o 1_o cor._n 2.12_o 1_o cor._n 2.12_o now_o we_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o god_n which_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n he_o call_v a_o little_a before_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o prince_n thereof_o vers_fw-la 6._o and_o oppose_v the_o same_o to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n vers_fw-la 7._o and_o what_o else_o can_v be_v this_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n but_o those_o humane_a policy_n so_o frequent_a in_o the_o world_n whereby_o man_n steer_v their_o action_n to_o their_o worldly_a end_n and_o interest_n with_o this_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n be_v all_o such_o possess_v who_o have_v set_v up_o and_o enshrine_v the_o world_n in_o their_o heart_n do_v thereupon_o ground_v their_o religion_n and_o thence_o deduce_v all_o their_o reason_n argument_n and_o religious_a conclusion_n so_o that_o they_o can_v find_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o be_v thus_o far_o religious_a and_o to_o close_v with_o this_o or_o that_o sect_n society_n and_o opinion_n in_o religion_n as_o it_o stand_v with_o their_o worldly_a profit_n pleasure_n credit_n preferment_n or_o the_o like_a it_o be_v from_o the_o dictate_v of_o this_o spirit_n that_o jeroboam_n the_o son_n of_o nebat_fw-la make_v israel_n to_o sin_n pull_v down_o the_o holy_a and_o true_a religion_n establish_v among_o the_o people_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o erect_v two_o golden_a calf_n at_o dan_n and_o bethel_n which_o become_v a_o snare_n unto_o the_o people_n who_o be_v thereby_o inveigle_v into_o idolatry_n the_o cause_n of_o their_o utter_a ruin_n and_o extirpation_n in_o the_o end_n 12.28,29_o 1_o king_n 12.28,29_o and_o what_o other_o spirit_n be_v it_o that_o move_v this_o wicked_a usurper_n thereunto_o but_o that_o of_o his_o own_o worldly_a respect_n and_o interest_n there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n as_o this_o worldly_a spirit_n dictate_v to_o he_o to_o uphold_v his_o present_a estate_n and_o new_o get_v monarchy_n so_o we_o read_v 12.26_o 1_o king_n 12.26_o 1_o king_n 12.26_o etc._n etc._n and_o jeroboam_n say_v in_o his_o heart_n now_o shall_v the_o kingdom_n return_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n etc._n etc._n rather_o than_o the_o people_n shall_v return_v to_o their_o obedience_n to_o their_o liege_n lord_n and_o sovereign_n religion_n must_v down_o and_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o dust_n to_o make_v way_n for_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n to_o be_v set_v up_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v discard_v and_o the_o low_a of_o the_o people_n exalt_v to_o that_o dignity_n and_o to_o make_v the_o office_n more_o contemptible_a every_o one_o that_o listen_v may_v take_v up_o the_o trade_n and_o consecrate_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n 13.33_o 1_o king_n 13.33_o 1_o king_n 13.33_o it_o be_v this_o very_a spirit_n also_o that_o stir_v up_o the_o
high-priest_n and_o pharisee_n to_o take_v counsel_n against_o our_o saviour_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n for_o say_v they_o if_o we_o let_v he_o alone_o all_o man_n will_v believe_v on_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o roman_n will_v come_v and_o take_v away_o our_o place_n and_o nation_n joh._n 11.48_o it_o be_v this_o spirit_n also_o that_o stir_v up_o demetrius_n the_o silver-smith_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o craftsman_n of_o the_o like_a occupation_n against_o st._n paul_n and_o his_o companion_n and_o the_o holy_a christian_a religion_n preach_v by_o they_o his_o pretence_n be_v religion_n such_o a_o kind_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v viz._n lest_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o great_a goddess_n dianu_n shall_v be_v nothing_o esteem_v and_o her_o magnificence_n who_o asia_n and_o all_o the_o world_n worship_v shall_v be_v destroy_v but_o this_o religion_n be_v blow_v by_o the_o wind_n of_o his_o own_o worldly_a end_n his_o profit_n his_o gain_n which_o he_o get_v by_o make_v silver_n shrine_v for_o diana_n be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v lose_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v now_o time_n for_o to_o stir_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o her_o honour_n as_o his_o own_o profit_n act._n 19.27_o 19.27_o act._n 19.27_o and_o it_o be_v this_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n that_o possess_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n general_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n man_n measure_n and_o square_v out_o their_o religion_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o profit_n or_o pleasure_n or_o preferment_n or_o credit_n and_o esteem_v among_o man_n or_o indeed_o at_o the_o best_a by_o the_o rule_n of_o self-preservation_n so_o far_o perhaps_o they_o will_v sail_v by_o the_o wind_n of_o god_n spirit_n as_o the_o sea_n of_o this_o world_n be_v calm_a peaceable_a pleasant_a and_o the_o navigation_n gainful_a or_o at_o least_o not_o chargeable_a but_o if_o any_o tempest_n arise_v any_o gust_n of_o trouble_n or_o opposition_n against_o the_o truth_n blow_v in_o the_o face_n of_o its_o professor_n if_o any_o damage_n or_o danger_n pursue_v they_o in_o their_o course_n they_o present_o tack_v about_o and_o will_v sail_v no_o long_o by_o the_o heavenly_a wind_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o earthly_a wind_n of_o their_o own_o worldly_a end_n and_o interest_n not_o by_o the_o wind_n which_o blow_v from_o heaven_n but_o by_o that_o which_o arise_v out_o of_o the_o cave_n and_o hollow_n of_o a_o earthly_a mind_n 24.24_o jam._n 1.6_o 2_o sam._n 24.24_o suffer_v themselves_o by_o this_o wind_n to_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o drive_v to_o be_v of_o this_o or_o that_o or_o any_o religion_n that_o shall_v cost_v they_o nothing_o nothing_o of_o charge_n trouble_n or_o danger_n ebb_v and_o flow_v in_o this_o world_n vast_a sea_n as_o the_o tide_n either_o of_o prosperity_n or_o adversity_n danger_n or_o security_n make_v for_o or_o against_o they_o but_o this_o sure_o be_v such_o a_o spirit_n as_o blow_n quite_o cross_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n which_o guide_v and_o direct_v the_o apostle_n for_o they_o finish_v their_o course_n over_o the_o troublous_a sea_n of_o this_o world_n to_o the_o celestial_a canaan_n by_o sail_v in_o all_o weather_n encounter_v all_o opposition_n and_o pass_v through_o all_o storm_n that_o meet_v and_o oppose_v they_o in_o affliction_n in_o necessity_n in_o distress_n in_o stripe_n in_o prison_n in_o tumult_n in_o labour_n by_o watch_n by_o fasting_n etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 6.4,5,6_o 6,4,5,6_o 1_o cor._n 6,4,5,6_o and_o yet_o in_o all_o these_o difficulty_n still_o faith_n the_o father_n aug._n aug._n the_o yoke_n of_o christ_n be_v easy_a and_o his_o burden_n light_n nay_o there_o be_v ease_n peace_n and_o comfort_n to_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o the_o trouble_n danger_n want_n or_o necessity_n that_o can_v in_o this_o life_n encounter_v we_o while_o the_o holy_a ghost_n secret_o by_o his_o comfort_n both_o cheer_v our_o spirit_n and_o fill_v the_o sail_n of_o our_o desire_n with_o the_o hope_n of_o arrive_v safe_a in_o the_o end_n at_o the_o harbour_n of_o eternal_a peace_n and_o felicity_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o trial_n of_o spirit_n general_n 3_o since_o then_o that_o grand_a malignant_a spirit_n the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n work_v by_o these_o two_o familiar_n man_v own_o deceivable_a spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n do_v thus_o many_o way_n counterfeit_v poison_n pervert_n and_o consequent_o obstruct_v impede_fw-la and_o overthrow_v the_o working_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n as_o a_o antidote_n against_o this_o poison_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o that_o his_o countermine_n prevail_v not_o to_o the_o subversion_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o must_v make_v use_n of_o that_o friendly_a admonition_n of_o the_o apostle_n never_o so_o necessary_a to_o be_v observe_v and_o practise_v as_o now_o 4.1_o 1_o joh._n 4.1_o dear_o belove_v believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o for_o many_o false_a prophet_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n the_o admonition_n be_v twofold_a first_o negative_a believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n second_o positive_a try_v the_o spirit_n and_o there_o be_v one_o general_a reason_n give_v for_o both_o because_o many_o false_a prophet_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n he_o than_o that_o shall_v be_v so_o credulous_a as_o to_o give_v heed_n to_o every_o one_o that_o pretend_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o under_o that_o pretence_n treat_v of_o holy_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o shall_v not_o first_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o truth_n examine_v and_o try_v such_o thing_n and_o person_n shall_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v lie_n and_o error_n obtrude_v upon_o he_o under_o the_o dress_n and_o attire_n of_o truth_n because_o there_o ever_o be_v and_o ever_o shall_v be_v by_o god_n permission_n and_o the_o devil_n suggestion_n false_a prophet_n or_o false_a teacher_n in_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o as_o fair_a and_o great_a pretender_n to_o the_o truth_n as_o the_o very_a true_a patron_n and_o promoter_n thereof_o such_o there_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n both_o under_o the_o law_n of_o old_a 2.1_o 2_o pet._n 2.1_o and_o under_o the_o gospel_n anew_o 2_o pet._n 2.1_o but_o there_o be_v false_a prophet_n also_o among_o the_o people_n even_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v false_a teacher_n among_o you_o which_o privy_o shall_v bring_v in_o damnable_a heresy_n even_o deny_v the_o lord_n that_o buy_v they_o and_o shall_v bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a destruction_n and_o it_o be_v well_o if_o the_o poison_n spread_v no_o further_o so_o that_o other_o be_v not_o infect_v therewith_o also_o but_o so_o nauseous_a be_v truth_n to_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n for_o its_o age_n and_o antiquity_n and_o so_o acceptable_a be_v lie_n and_o error_n for_o their_o novelty_n that_o these_o false_a teacher_n never_o fail_v of_o many_o disciple_n and_o follower_n so_o it_o follow_v vers_fw-la 2._o 1._o 2_o pet._n 2_o 1._o and_o many_o shall_v follow_v their_o destruction_n by_o who_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n shall_v be_v evil_o speak_v of_o first_o then_o believe_v they_o not_o follow_v they_o not_o be_v not_o cozen_v by_o their_o fair_a pretence_n so_o as_o to_o be_v infect_v with_o their_o false_a doctrine_n it_o be_v our_o saviour_n own_o command_n mat._n 24.23_o 24.23_o mat._n 24.23_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v unto_o you_o loe_o here_o be_v christ_n or_o loe_o there_o believe_v it_o not_o for_o there_o shall_v arise_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n and_o shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_a but_o that_o be_v forewarn_v you_o may_v be_v arm_v against_o their_o delusion_n behold_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o before_o wherefore_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n go_v not_o forth_o behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o secret_a place_n believe_v it_o not_o the_o same_o care_n and_o caution_n be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o his_o people_n under_o the_o law_n 1._o deut._n 13_o 1._o if_o there_o arise_v among_o you_o a_o prophet_n or_o a_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n and_o give_v thou_o a_o sign_n or_o a_o wonder_n 2._o verse_n 2._o and_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o wonder_n which_o he_o have_v tell_v thou_o come_v to_o pass_v say_v let_v we_o go_v after_o other_o god_n which_o thou_o have_v not_o know_v and_o let_v we_o serve_v they_o 3._o 3._o thou_o shall_v not_o hearken_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n or_o unto_o that_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n for_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n prove_v you_o to_o know_v whether_o you_o love_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o your_o soul_n from_o whence_o
it_o be_v also_o further_o observable_a the_o reason_n why_o god_n suffer_v false_a prophet_n to_o arise_v viz._n for_o the_o probation_n and_o trial_n of_o our_o proficiency_n and_o integrity_n in_o the_o love_n and_o service_n of_o god_n for_o so_o say_v the_o father_n upon_o those_o word_n aug._n aug._n for_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n prove_v you_o to_o know_v whether_o you_o love_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o your_o soul_n tentat_fw-la nos_fw-la dominus_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la sciat_fw-la ipse_fw-la quem_fw-la nihil_fw-la latet_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la scire_fw-la nos_fw-la faciat_fw-la quantum_fw-la in_o ejus_fw-la dilectione_n profecerimus_fw-la god_n suffer_v we_o to_o be_v tempt_v try_v and_o prove_v by_o the_o lie_a wonder_n of_o false_a prophet_n arise_v among_o we_o not_o that_o he_o himself_o may_v know_v what_o be_v in_o we_o to_o who_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n be_v naked_a and_o bare_a but_o that_o we_o may_v thereby_o know_v ourselves_o and_o our_o own_o proficiency_n and_o constancy_n to_o the_o principle_n of_o truth_n and_o integrity_n the_o very_a same_o reason_n be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o heresy_n 1_o cor._n 11.19_o for_o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n among_o you_o that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v among_o you_o may_v be_v know_v 11.19_o 1_o cor_fw-la 11.19_o quolibet_fw-la errore_fw-la caecentur_fw-la etc._n etc._n 18._o aug._n the_o civ_o dei_fw-la lib._n 18._o with_o what_o error_n soever_o our_o enemy_n be_v blind_v or_o with_o what_o wickedness_n soever_o they_o be_v deprave_v it_o be_v for_o the_o proof_n trial_n and_o exercise_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n within_o we_o have_v they_o receive_v power_n to_o afflict_v persecute_v imprison_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o patience_n in_o suffering_n and_o charity_n in_o love_v our_o enemy_n and_o pray_v for_o our_o persecutor_n as_o become_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n 5.44_o mat._n 5.44_o mat._n 5.44_o do_v they_o only_o by_o fair_a word_n and_o cunning_a speech_n distil_v their_o false_a and_o poisonous_a doctrine_n 6.1_o gal._n 6.1_o it_o be_v for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o wisdom_n in_o resist_v and_o beneficence_n in_o persuade_v and_o endeavour_v to_o restore_v they_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n prove_v whether_o god_n will_v give_v they_o repentance_n to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v escape_v the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o who_o they_o be_v take_v captive_a at_o his_o will_n 2.25,26_o 2_o tim._n 2.25,26_o 2_o tim._n 2.25,26_o second_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o try_v they_o how_o but_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n must_v necessary_o therefore_o in_o all_o his_o qualification_n and_o impression_n be_v consentaneous_a and_o agreeable_a to_o himself_o aug._n aug._n veritas_fw-la veritati_fw-la congrua_fw-la one_o truth_n ever_o hold_v proportion_n with_o another_o nay_o all_o truth_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o image_n and_o resemblance_n one_o of_o another_o they_o be_v all_o link_n of_o the_o same_o golden_a chain_n which_o affix_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o heaven_n display_v '_o its_o radiant_a lustre_n unto_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n upon_o earth_n they_o be_v all_o but_o stream_n flow_v from_o one_o and_o the_o same_o fountain_n the_o god_n of_o truth_n there_o be_v nothing_o then_o that_o we_o be_v to_o receive_v for_o truth_n but_o what_o be_v consonant_a and_o agree_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o ever_o bless_a spirit_n speak_v in_o the_o word_n have_v thereby_o prescribe_v and_o give_v we_o a_o sure_a and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o truth_n what_o the_o apostle_n call_v a_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n eph._n 5.18,19_o he_o also_o call_v the_o dwell_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o rich_o which_o any_o one_o that_o will_v compare_v the_o place_n may_v perceive_v whence_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o observe_v that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v no_o other_o by_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n then_o to_o be_v full_a of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o be_v mighty_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v not_o only_o the_o great_a dictator_n of_o the_o scripture_n unto_o we_o but_o also_o our_o guide_n in_o several_a respect_n as_o to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o they_o rule_n 1_o the_o first_o rule_n of_o trial_n than_o be_v the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n in_o general_a that_o be_v the_o grand_a general_a rule_n that_o be_v the_o great_a square_n or_o level_n according_a to_o which_o we_o be_v to_o try_v and_o examine_v the_o rectitude_n truth_n and_o integrity_n both_o of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n of_o other_o without_o and_o also_o the_o impression_n and_o working_n of_o the_o spirit_n within_o gal._n 1.8_o though_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v unto_o you_o another_o gospel_n beside_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v 1.8_o gal._n 1.8_o though_o we_o prefer_n authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o have_v preach_v before_o their_o own_o authority_n the_o preacher_n thereof_o nay_o before_o the_o authority_n of_o celestial_a spirit_n though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n he_o see_v say_v the_o father_n aug._n aug._n that_o it_o may_v so_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o satan_n transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o work_v by_o his_o mediator_n and_o instrument_n those_o deceitful_a worker_n who_o transform_v themselves_o into_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n 11,13,14_o 2_o cor._n 11,13,14_o may_v so_o cozen_v and_o deceive_v they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o gospel_n receive_v which_o be_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n therefore_o he_o say_v another_o gospel_n beside_o etc._n etc._n praeter_fw-la any_o thing_n that_o be_v beside_o that_o hold_v not_o square_a and_o be_v not_o level_v to_o that_o rule_n qui_fw-la praetergreditur_fw-la fidei_fw-la regulam_fw-la non_fw-la procedit_fw-la in_o via_fw-la sed_fw-la recedit_fw-la à_fw-la via_fw-la he_o that_o go_v beside_o and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n go_v not_o forward_o in_o the_o way_n but_o backward_o from_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n so_o 1_o joh._n 4.8_o we_o be_v of_o god_n speak_v of_o himself_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n he_o that_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o acquiescendo_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la cleave_v to_o our_o doctrine_n lyra._n lyra._n and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n hear_v we_o not_o neither_o be_v obedient_a to_o our_o word_n and_o hereby_o know_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n q._n d._n he_o that_o cleave_v to_o our_o doctrine_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o he_o that_o do_v not_o so_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n will_v come_v with_o his_o scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la likewise_o as_o he_o do_v against_o our_o lord_n himself_o mat._n 4._o and_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatics_n do_v general_o allege_v scripture_n and_o wrest_v the_o very_a say_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n against_o himself_o to_o insinuate_v thereby_o their_o lie_n and_o error_n for_o as_o tertullian_n observe_v of_o the_o writing_n of_o ovid_n virgil_n homer_n both_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o have_v be_v transfer_v unto_o other_o use_n and_o the_o verse_n apply_v to_o other_o matter_n even_o so_o do_v heretic_n deal_v with_o the_o holy_a writing_n of_o inspire_a man_n 39_o de_fw-fr praeser_n adv_fw-la haer._n cap._n 39_o nec_fw-la periclitor_fw-la dicere_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o dispose_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v accidentaliter_fw-la and_o by_o the_o by_o even_o administer_v matter_n to_o heresy_n since_o i_o read_v that_o heresy_n must_v come_v and_o without_o the_o scripture_n they_o can_v come_v for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o production_n of_o heresy_n as_o of_o natural_a thing_n corruptio_fw-la unius_fw-la est_fw-la generatio_fw-la alterius_fw-la the_o corruption_n of_o truth_n be_v the_o generation_n of_o heresy_n all_o heretical_a opinion_n be_v general_o ground_v upon_o and_o flow_v from_o the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n the_o scripture_n not_o as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o right_o interpret_v and_o understand_v but_o as_o they_o be_v wrest_v and_o pervert_v either_o in_o the_o word_n or_o in_o the_o sense_n either_o by_o addition_n or_o diminution_n or_o by_o not_o consider_v they_o together_o but_o divide_v into_o part_n and_o take_v up_o by_o shred_n and_o piece_n for_o the_o avoid_v whereof_o these_o follow_a rule_n must_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o trial_n of_o spirit_n by_o the_o scripture_n rule_n 1_o first_o try_v and_o examine_v by_o
notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v conversant_a with_o christ_n all_o the_o while_o he_o continue_v preach_v the_o gospel_n upon_o earth_n daily_o hear_v his_o heavenly_a doctrine_n as_o it_o distil_v from_o his_o own_o mouth_n and_o see_v the_o miracle_n he_o do_v for_o the_o confirmation_n thereof_o and_o though_o they_o be_v endue_v in_o some_o measure_n with_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n before_o his_o ascension_n for_o he_o breathe_v on_o they_o etc._n etc._n luk._n 24.45_o he_o open_v their_o understanding_n to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n yet_o all_o this_o be_v not_o think_v sufficient_a to_o preach_v and_o open_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o world_n but_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o do_v it_o till_o they_o receive_v additional_a gift_n of_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n from_o above_o luk._n 24.49_o tarry_v you_o at_o jerusalem_n till_o you_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n from_o on_o high_a loc._n gloss_n ordin_fw-fr in_o loc._n ut_fw-la exemplum_fw-la sequentibus_fw-la daretur_fw-la etc._n etc._n give_v example_n to_o all_o posterity_n that_o no_o weak_a and_o illiterate_a person_n want_v the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n art_n etc._n etc._n presume_v to_o intermeddle_v with_o preach_v or_o unfolding_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v record_v of_o the_o great_a st._n basil_n and_o nazianzen_n 9_o ruffian_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 9_o that_o after_o their_o long_a study_n in_o saecular_a learning_n they_o continue_v for_o the_o space_n of_o thirteen_o year_n together_o in_o a_o monastery_n give_v themselves_o to_o the_o study_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n whereof_o they_o fetch_v not_o out_o of_o their_o own_o head_n but_o out_o of_o the_o writing_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_n to_o who_o by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o rule_n of_o right_a understanding_n the_o scripture_n be_v apparent_o know_v the_o order_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o providence_n in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o holy_a truth_n to_o the_o world_n be_v worth_a our_o observation_n out_o of_o 1_o cor._n 12.4,5,6_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o spirit_n there_o be_v diversity_n of_o administration_n but_o the_o same_o lord_n and_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o operation_n but_o the_o same_o god_n that_o work_v all_o in_o all_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o observe_v that_o there_o must_v be_v gift_n before_o administration_n i._n e._n 1._o a_o man_n must_v be_v qualify_v with_o gift_n fit_a for_o every_o call_n before_o he_o receive_v administration_n or_o be_v ordain_v to_o that_o call_n 2._o there_o must_v be_v administration_n before_o operation_n i._n e._n a_o man_n must_v be_v lawful_o ordain_v to_o a_o calling_n before_o he_o work_v or_o labour_n therein_o so_o in_o the_o great_a call_n of_o the_o ministry_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n must_v precede_v or_o go_v before_o before_o letter_n of_o administration_n be_v take_v and_o 2._o a_o lawful_a ordination_n must_v be_v take_v before_o operation_n or_o work_v therein_o and_o he_o that_o either_o 1._o assume_v this_o high_a and_o sacred_a function_n etc._n bish_n ands._n serm_n in_o 1_o cor._n 12.14_o etc._n etc._n be_v not_o qualify_v with_o gift_n contemn_v the_o spirit_n from_o who_o they_o come_v or_o 2._o he_o that_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n though_o he_o be_v gift_v be_v not_o also_o lawful_o ordain_v contemn_v the_o lord_n from_o who_o all_o administration_n come_v and_o who_o have_v institute_v and_o command_v ordination_n thereunto_o or_o 3._o he_o that_o be_v both_o gift_a and_o lawful_o ordain_v be_v not_o industrious_a in_o this_o call_n contemn_v god_n the_o father_n of_o all_o operation_n who_o work_v all_o in_o all_o he_o that_o think_v any_o of_o these_o superfluous_a may_v as_o well_o question_v whether_o some_o one_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v not_o superfluous_a also_o even_o that_o person_n from_o who_o come_v that_o part_n of_o the_o division_n which_o he_o slight_v and_o contemn_v as_o it_o be_v therefore_o in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o the_o father_n beget_v the_o son_n and_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n proceed_v the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o in_o this_o division_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n beget_v the_o lord_n administration_n or_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n and_o both_o together_o produce_v the_o operation_n or_o labour_n therein_o which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o as_o no_o man_n come_v to_o christ_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o no_o man_n come_v lawful_o to_o the_o call_n but_o by_o the_o gift_n and_o as_o no_o man_n come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n so_o no_o man_n come_v to_o the_o work_n but_o by_o the_o call_n chap._n xiii_o the_o internal_a and_o divine_a qualification_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o to_o the_o understanding_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 1._o it_o be_v confess_v that_o all_o the_o external_a part_n of_o humane_a learning_n already_o remember_v though_o they_o be_v the_o gift_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o necessary_a help_n to_o the_o open_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o literal_a and_o genuine_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n yet_o be_v not_o in_o themselves_o alone_o sufficient_a to_o attain_v a_o true_a and_o thorough_o save_v knowledge_n thereof_o except_o our_o soul_n be_v enrich_v as_o with_o the_o outward_a gift_n so_o with_o inward_a grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n also_o truth_n and_o holiness_n be_v the_o two_o inseparable_a constituent_a part_n of_o spiritual_a wisdom_n and_o to_o understand_v the_o truth_n or_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o word_n the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n must_v necessary_o concur_v and_o this_o be_v most_o eloquent_o express_v job_n 28._o where_o after_o a_o most_o high_a and_o magnificent_a expression_n of_o the_o praise_n great_a price_n and_o value_n of_o true_a wisdom_n a_o view_n be_v take_v of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o it_o may_v be_v find_v gold_n and_o silver_n iron_n and_o brass_n all_o useful_a metal_n and_o precious_a stone_n have_v their_o place_n though_o secret_a design_v they_o but_o where_o shall_v this_o rich_a pearl_n where_o shall_v wisdom_n be_v find_v and_o what_o be_v the_o place_n of_o understanding_n verse_n 12._o it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n the_o depth_n say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o i_o and_o the_o sea_n say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o i_o verse_n 14._o it_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o live_n and_o keep_v close_o from_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n vers_n 21._o the_o most_o eagly_n sight_v philosopher_n and_o wiseman_n of_o the_o world_n who_o have_v view_v the_o nature_n property_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n not_o in_o the_o earth_n alone_o but_o in_o the_o heaven_n also_o even_o the_o course_n influence_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n have_v not_o yet_o attain_v true_a wisdom_n how_o then_o shall_v we_o find_v it_o out_o it_o follow_v god_n know_v the_o place_n thereof_o and_o he_o understand_v the_o way_n thereof_o vers_fw-la 23._o and_o he_o have_v say_v behold_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v wisdom_n and_o to_o depart_v from_o evil_n be_v understanding_n brief_o describe_v both_o the_o place_n of_o wisdom_n and_o the_o way_n thereunto_o even_o the_o way_n of_o piety_n and_o obedience_n and_o of_o that_o piety_n which_o be_v necessary_o requisite_a to_o the_o understanding_n of_o holy_a truth_n there_o be_v several_a species_n or_o particular_a part_n which_o from_o the_o example_n of_o holy_a bernard_n may_v be_v thus_o reckon_v up_o qui_fw-la ut_fw-la legeret_fw-la intelligendi_fw-la fecit_fw-la cupiditas_fw-la ut_fw-la intelligeret_fw-la oratio_fw-la impetravit_fw-la ut_fw-la impetraret_fw-la quid_fw-la nisi_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la promeruit_fw-la his_o earnest_a desire_n of_o knowledge_n make_v he_o studious_a and_o industrious_a in_o read_v his_o fervent_a prayer_n obtain_v the_o understanding_n of_o what_o he_o read_v and_o his_o holy_a life_n make_v his_o prayer_n effectual_a for_o the_o enlighten_v of_o his_o understanding_n and_o thus_o he_o must_v desire_v thus_o study_n thus_o pray_v and_o thus_o live_v who_o will_v attain_v that_o knowledge_n which_o shall_v make_v he_o wise_a to_o salvation_n 1._o the_o first_o divine_a qualification_n of_o the_o soul_n requisite_a unto_o knowledge_n be_v the_o desire_n thereof_o the_o beginning_n of_o wisdom_n be_v the_o desire_n of_o instruction_n wisd_v 6.17_o come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o be_v desirous_a of_o i_o and_o fill_v yourselves_o with_o my_o fruit_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la 24.19_o and_o what_o be_v more_o authentic_a if_o thou_o seek_v wisdom_n as_o silver_n and_o search_v for_o she_o as_o for_o hide_a treasure_n then_o shall_v thou_o understand_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o
influence_n upon_o their_o heart_n than_o the_o law_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n for_o that_o consist_v of_o many_o beggarly_a element_n many_o type_n and_o figure_n rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o consider_v in_o themselves_o have_v no_o such_o efficacy_n to_o work_v upon_o the_o soul_n to_o obey_v they_o as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v therefore_o the_o one_o be_v call_v carnal_a ordinance_n and_o the_o other_o spiritual_a 2._o there_o be_v more_o need_n of_o frequent_a instruction_n and_o teach_n of_o the_o people_n to_o keep_v they_o up_o to_o the_o observance_n of_o those_o carnal_a ordinance_n under_o the_o old_a law_n than_o there_o be_v under_o the_o new_a because_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v more_o plain_a clear_a and_o convince_a so_o that_o person_n of_o the_o mean_a capacity_n may_v understand_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o vers_fw-la 11._o they_o shall_v not_o teach_v every_o man_n his_o neighbour_n etc._n etc._n not_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o teach_n at_o all_o under_o the_o gospel_n but_o that_o less_o teach_n shall_v serve_v the_o turn_n 3._o the_o sacrifice_n under_o the_o law_n be_v weak_a and_o insufficient_a as_o to_o the_o take_v away_o of_o sin_n but_o the_o offering_n up_o of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o for_o all_o be_v a_o sufficient_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 1_o joh._n 2.2_o and_o that_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o vers_fw-la 12._o i_o will_v be_v merciful_a to_o their_o unrighteousness_n and_o their_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n i_o will_v remember_v no_o more_o and_o for_o the_o further_o clear_v of_o these_o word_n loc._n cognitio_fw-la viae_fw-la &_o cognitio_fw-la patriae_fw-la lyr._fw-la in_o loc._n they_o shall_v not_o teach_v etc._n etc._n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a knowledge_n of_o god_n 1._o in_o this_o life_n 2._o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o to_o both_o of_o these_o the_o word_n in_o their_o literal_a sense_n do_v relate_v 1._o that_o in_o this_o life_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n under_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o at_o the_o first_o teach_v by_o man_n but_o by_o the_o bless_a son_n of_o god_n himself_o by_o he_o the_o apostle_n be_v instruct_v at_o the_o first_o and_o not_o one_o of_o another_o and_o to_o he_o this_o pprophecy_n be_v by_o himself_o apply_v they_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n joh._n 6.45_o 2._o that_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v all_o the_o bless_a saint_n of_o god_n from_o the_o least_o to_o the_o great_a shall_v true_o know_v god_n without_o the_o mediation_n of_o humane_a teach_v for_o then_o shall_v we_o see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v when_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_a be_v come_v then_o that_o which_o be_v imperfect_a shall_v be_v do_v away_o 1_o cor._n 13.9,10_o but_o that_o in_o this_o life_n the_o people_n shall_v have_v no_o need_n of_o pastor_n to_o teach_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v a_o false_a collection_n from_o the_o word_n for_o as_o under_o the_o law_n moses_n teach_v god_n will_n unto_o the_o people_n and_o afterward_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n so_o under_o the_o gospel_n 1._o christ_n himself_o reveal_v and_o teach_v god_n will_v to_o his_o church_n and_o afterward_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n in_o all_o age_n since_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o promise_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o gospel_n thy_o eye_n shall_v see_v thy_o teacher_n isa_n 30.20_o and_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n etc._n etc._n eph._n 4.11,12_o for_o as_o the_o same_o apostle_n demand_v how_o shall_v they_o i._n e._n any_o people_n believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n rom._n 10.14_o where_o preach_v and_o hear_v be_v affirm_v to_o be_v the_o necessary_a medium_n of_o receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o believe_v in_o christ_n another_o place_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v allege_v 1_o joh._n 2.20_o 2.20_o 1_o joh._n 2.20_o you_o have_v a_o unction_n from_o the_o holy_a one_o and_o you_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o vers_fw-la 27._o 27._o 27._o the_o anoint_v which_o you_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o abide_v in_o you_o and_o you_o need_v not_o that_o any_o man_n teach_v you_o but_o as_o the_o same_o anoint_v teach_v you_o of_o all_o thing_n and_o be_v truth_n and_o be_v no_o lie_n and_o even_o as_o he_o have_v teach_v you_o remain_v in_o he_o still_o this_o unction_n from_o the_o holy_a one_o teach_v and_o whereby_o these_o disciple_n be_v teach_v all_o necessary_a truth_n be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n send_v down_o from_o christ_n the_o holy_a one_o upon_o his_o apostle_n who_o be_v replenish_v with_o his_o celestial_a gift_n be_v not_o only_a themselves_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n but_o do_v also_o teach_v their_o disciple_n the_o same_o and_o the_o same_o anoint_v abide_v in_o you_o i._n e._n the_o same_o spiritual_a gift_n viz._n of_o pprophecy_n of_o miracle_n of_o tongue_n etc._n etc._n do_v still_o as_o yet_o abide_v in_o their_o church_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o those_o truth_n which_o they_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o hereby_o even_o by_o those_o sacred_a person_n which_o have_v these_o gift_n they_o be_v hold_v up_o to_o the_o truth_n and_o keep_v free_a from_o the_o seducement_n of_o heretic_n and_o you_o need_v not_o that_o any_o man_n teach_v you_o so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v already_o teach_v and_o know_v all_o thing_n already_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v they_o have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o man_n to_o teach_v they_o namely_o as_o ignorant_a and_o seduce_a person_n have_v need_n of_o teacher_n the_o ignorant_a must_v be_v teach_v that_o they_o may_v learn_v what_o they_o know_v not_o before_o and_o the_o seduce_a and_o erroneous_a must_v be_v teach_v that_o they_o may_v return_v to_o that_o faith_n from_o which_o they_o be_v fall_v but_o these_o faithful_a person_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n here_o write_v be_v it_o seem_v neither_o ignorant_a nor_o yet_o seduce_v and_o in_o neither_o of_o these_o respect_n have_v need_v of_o teach_v but_o yet_o in_o other_o respect_v both_o these_o disciple_n and_o all_o other_o that_o do_v both_o know_v and_o persevere_v also_o in_o the_o truth_n have_v need_n of_o teacher_n still_o by_o who_o assistance_n and_o direction_n they_o may_v 1._o be_v confirm_v and_o strengthen_v to_o persist_v in_o the_o truth_n already_o receive_v 2._o grow_v up_o and_o increase_v daily_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n 3._o be_v arm_v against_o the_o fair_a word_n and_o cunning_a speech_n of_o such_o as_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v the_o like_a place_n 4.9_o 1_o thess_n 4.9_o which_o may_v help_v also_o to_o the_o further_o clear_v of_o this_o be_v 1_o thess_n 4.9_o touch_v brotherly_a love_n you_o have_v no_o need_n that_o i_o write_v unto_o you_o for_o you_o yourselves_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n to_o love_v one_o another_o teach_v of_o god_n but_o how_o not_o by_o immediate_a revelation_n but_o by_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o do_v so_o often_o inculcate_v this_o lesson_n of_o brotherly_a love_n joh._n 13.34,35_o &_o 15.17_o and_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o all_o other_o gospel_n truth_n all_o of_o they_o we_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n from_o he_o they_o descend_v original_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o conduit_n through_o who_o the_o water_n of_o life_n do_v flow_v from_o god_n to_o christ_n from_o christ_n to_o his_o apostle_n from_o they_o to_o their_o successor_n and_o disciple_n pastor_n and_o people_n in_o all_o age_n but_o withal_o it_o be_v confess_v and_o with_o all_o thankfulness_n of_o soul_n to_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o inward_a teach_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o a_o outward_a viz._n the_o dictate_v of_o the_o spirit_n within_o as_o well_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o word_n without_o these_o two_o god_n have_v join_v together_o and_o we_o must_v not_o presume_v to_o part_v they_o by_o depend_v upon_o the_o one_o without_o the_o other_o for_o as_o all_o study_n and_o meditation_n read_v and_o hear_v the_o word_n be_v ineffectual_a if_o the_o inward_a influence_n of_o god_n spirit_n do_v not_o open_a the_o wndowe_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o receive_v the_o light_n display_v thence_o so_o the_o inward_a influence_n and_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v ordinary_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n silent_a and_o stir_v not_o but_o by_o read_v hear_v meditate_v of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o
the_o quaker_n wild_a question_n object_v against_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o many_o sacred_a act_n and_o office_n of_o religion_n with_o brief_a answer_n thereunto_o together_o with_o a_o discourse_n 1._o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n his_o impression_n and_o working_n on_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n 2._o of_o divine_a revelation_n mediate_v and_o immediate_a 3._o of_o error_n heresy_n and_o schism_n the_o nature_n kind_n cause_n reason_n and_o danger_n thereof_o with_o direction_n for_o avoid_v the_o same_o all_o very_o seasonable_a for_o these_o time_n by_o r._n sherlock_n b_o d._n at_o borwick-hal_n in_o lancashire_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mat._n 13.24,25_o london_n print_v by_o e._n cotes_n for_o r._n royston_n at_o the_o angel_n in_o ivy-lane_n 1656._o to_o the_o honourable_a sir_n robert_n bindlosse_n baronet_n sir_n it_o be_v not_o any_o ambitious_a desire_n to_o appear_v in_o print_n that_o have_v occasion_v the_o birth_n and_o production_n of_o these_o ensue_a letter_n and_o discourse_n as_o be_v conscious_a 1._o of_o my_o own_o disability_n to_o discuss_v the_o several_a point_n and_o particular_n thereof_o with_o that_o learning_n and_o judgement_n which_o the_o great_a weight_n and_o present_a usefulness_n thereof_o require_v as_o know_v 2._o my_n more_o than_o ordinary_a obnoxiousness_n to_o the_o censure_n of_o all_o party_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o fidelity_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o command_n and_o order_n of_o our_o sad_o distract_a and_o persecute_a mother_n the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o which_o i_o be_o persuade_v in_o conscience_n i_o ought_v as_o far_o as_o in_o christian_a prudence_n i_o may_v to_o preserve_v inviolable_a for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o violent_a dissolution_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n nor_o the_o manifold_a heresy_n and_o schism_n that_o assault_n wound_n and_o divide_v this_o once_o flourish_a spouse_n of_o christ_n which_o can_v warrant_v either_o a_o aberration_n from_o her_o orthodox_n doctrine_n or_o the_o neglect_n much_o less_o contempt_n of_o her_o apostolical_a order_n and_o constitution_n the_o sad_a condition_n wherein_o now_o she_o lie_v strip_v naked_a of_o all_o her_o goodly_a attire_n her_o authority_n despise_v her_o command_n slight_v the_o crown_n fall_v from_o her_o head_n her_o sacred_a body_n rend_v and_o mangle_a on_o all_o hand_n revile_v and_o reproach_v both_o by_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n do_v render_v she_o too_o conformable_a to_o her_o persecute_a abuse_a crucify_a lord_n and_o saviour_n to_o be_v abandon_v and_o forsake_v in_o her_o distress_n although_o all_o obedience_n to_o her_o order_n in_o such_o a_o sad_a juncture_n of_o time_n can_v expect_v no_o other_o portion_n but_o to_o drink_v with_o she_o of_o the_o same_o cup_n scorn_n and_o derision_n if_o not_o persecution_n these_o consideration_n may_v sufficient_o persuade_v the_o reader_n how_o unwilling_o i_o appear_v in_o print_n if_o not_o 1._o by_o way_n of_o challenge_n provoke_v and_o 2._o in_o conscience_n of_o my_o duty_n enforce_o move_v thereunto_o the_o occasion_n as_o it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o you_o sir_n so_o it_o be_v very_o fit_a it_o shall_v not_o be_v unknown_a to_o the_o reader_n also_o first_o then_o a_o letter_n of_o strange_a scrupulous_a and_o unheard_a of_o question_n be_v send_v to_o your_o house_n and_o receive_v their_o short_a and_o sudden_a answer_n by_o way_n of_o letter_n under_o your_o roof_n it_o be_v your_o desire_n they_o shall_v both_o be_v make_v public_a if_o perhaps_o some_o of_o the_o many_o misguide_a soul_n among_o we_o may_v receive_v satisfaction_n thereby_o together_o with_o a_o discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n intend_v for_o the_o private_a satisfaction_n of_o your_o virtuous_a lady_n for_o the_o further_o clear_v of_o the_o say_v scrupulous_a question_n this_o first_o edition_n be_v disperse_v it_o be_v the_o stationer_n desire_v it_o shall_v be_v reprint_v whereunto_o i_o the_o more_o willing_o condescend_v and_o withal_o add_v the_o other_o discourse_n thereunto_o because_o a_o reply_n to_o the_o foresay_a letter_n of_o answer_n and_o discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v appear_v public_o in_o print_n also_o not_o that_o i_o think_v it_o either_o prudent_a or_o profitable_a to_o have_v any_o further_a contestation_n with_o those_o strange_o seduce_v person_n who_o send_v that_o letter_n and_o publish_v this_o reply_n or_o to_o make_v any_o rejoynder_n thereunto_o for_o that_o be_v but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o beat_v the_o air_n and_o fight_v with_o shadow_n they_o be_v such_o kind_n of_o person_n who_o s._n augustine_n call_v sine_fw-la sine_fw-la dicentes_fw-la who_o know_v no_o end_n of_o vain_a word_n not_o distinguish_v betwixt_o respondere_fw-la posse_fw-la and_o tacere_fw-la nolle_fw-la have_v neither_o knowledge_n enough_o to_o give_v a_o right_a answer_n nor_o prudence_n enough_o to_o hold_v their_o peace_n as_o think_v sure_a that_o he_o who_o speak_v loud_a and_o long_a and_o will_v have_v the_o last_o word_n carry_v away_o the_o bell._n to_o wave_v therefore_o all_o intermedling_n with_o their_o print_a paper_n which_o sufficient_o answer_v themselves_o by_o their_o impertinency_n and_o rail_n more_o than_o to_o take_v notice_n thence_o upon_o what_o ground_n both_o they_o and_o most_o of_o heretic_n do_v build_v their_o erroneous_a opinion_n viz._n the_o pretence_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o immediate_a revelation_n back_v with_o many_o misinterpret_v and_o misapply_v text_n of_o scripture_n i_o conceive_v it_o more_o useful_a to_o add_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n former_o deliver_v that_o of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o it_o be_v so_o much_o object_v against_o the_o former_a discourse_n that_o therein_o revelation_n be_v deny_v which_o be_v that_o great_a diana_n so_o much_o worship_v and_o cry_v up_o by_o all_o late_o seduce_v and_o deceive_v person_n through_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o some_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o in_o the_o close_a of_o that_o discourse_n of_o revelation_n be_v clear_v from_o such_o misconception_n the_o intention_n of_o the_o three_o discourse_n be_v chief_o to_o lay_v down_o such_o ground_n and_o to_o give_v such_o direction_n as_o may_v assist_v against_o the_o infection_n of_o error_n in_o religion_n the_o plague_n whereof_o be_v grow_v so_o epidemical_a that_o there_o be_v never_o more_o need_v of_o antidote_n and_o preservative_n there-against_a and_o this_o can_v well_o be_v effect_v but_o that_o the_o nature_n kind_n reason_n and_o danger_n of_o error_n heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v first_o to_o be_v consider_v which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o that_o discourse_n it_o be_v a_o plausible_a and_o take_a way_n and_o very_o many_o unlearned_a and_o unstable_a soul_n be_v thereby_o bewitch_v into_o new_a strange_a and_o erroneous_a opinion_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v a_o far_o near_a cut_n to_o understand_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n than_o the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o study_n in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o industrious_a search_n into_o the_o book_n and_o writing_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o that_o be_v the_o way_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o immediate_a revelation_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o more_o require_v for_o the_o acquire_v of_o spiritual_a wisdom_n then_o to_o sit_v still_o and_o wait_v for_o divine_a inspiration_n from_o above_o without_o any_o use_n of_o those_o mean_n which_o god_n for_o that_o end_n have_v appoint_v and_o hence_o by_o cry_v up_o the_o spirit_n the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v cry_v down_o to_o who_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n or_o of_o public_a pray_v and_o preach_v after_o a_o especial_a manner_n be_v peculiar_a and_o proper_a and_o in_o stead_n of_o adore_v god_n for_o his_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o learning_n as_o well_o humane_a as_o divine_a impart_v to_o some_o man_n more_o than_o to_o other_o to_o be_v employ_v for_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o service_n and_o his_o people_n salvation_n those_o man_n be_v chief_o cry_v up_o who_o under_o pretence_n of_o pray_v and_o preach_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o without_o the_o help_n of_o heathenish_a learning_n as_o they_o call_v it_o most_o presumptuous_o vent_v many_o religious_a insignificancy_n devout_a nonsense_n impertinency_n and_o specious_a nothing_o i._n e._n many_o good_a word_n perhaps_o zealous_a expression_n and_o scripture_n phrase_n but_o for_o want_v of_o order_n coherence_n and_o due_a application_n conduce_v nothing_o either_o to_o the_o information_n of_o the_o mind_n with_o solid_a soulsaving_a truth_n or_o to_o the_o reformation_n of_o manner_n by_o grace_n and_o obedience_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o they_o prophesy_v lie_v also_o and_o preach_v many_o false_a and_o erroneous_a doctrine_n the_o delusion_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n if_o not_o the_o suggestion_n of_o satan_n and_o all_o must_v pass_v but_o most_o blasphemous_o for_o the_o
christ_n the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n which_o give_v forth_o the_o scripture_n see_v you_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o follow_v your_o own_o invention_n and_o tradition_n and_o so_o err_v from_o they_o question_n 20_o whether_o ever_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v first_o baptize_v and_o then_o preach_v faith_n and_o repentance_n twenty_o or_o thirty_o year_n after_o question_n 21_o whether_o ever_o christ_n or_o the_o apostle_n do_v retain_v 100_o or_o 200_o l._n a_o year_n for_o preach_v the_o gospel_n question_n 22_o what_o scripture_n be_v there_o to_o limit_n god_n to_o a_o place_n calling_z it_o a_o church_n whereas_o the_o church_n be_v in_o god_n 1_o thess_n 1.1_o question_n 23_o what_o scripture_n be_v there_o to_o have_v the_o clerk_n to_o say_v amen_o and_o have_v groat_n a_o piece_n of_o the_o world_n to_o maintain_v his_o trade_n question_n 24_o what_o scripture_n be_v there_o for_o take_v money_n to_o bury_v the_o dead_a question_n 25_o what_o scripture_n be_v there_o for_o take_v 10_o or_o 20_o s._n for_o preach_v a_o funeral_n sermon_n question_n 26_o what_o scripture_n be_v there_o for_o take_v money_n for_o marry_v man_n and_o woman_n question_n 27_o when_o do_v any_o that_o be_v send_v of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n sue_v man_n at_o the_o law_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o exercise_v a_o pure_a conscience_n towards_o god_n and_o towards_o man_n clear_v thyself_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o answer_v they_o in_o write_v by_o the_o scripture_n or_o saint_n example_n or_o else_o in_o silence_n confess_v thyself_o to_o be_v guilty_a and_o one_o of_o those_o that_o christ_n cry_v woe_n against_o act_v the_o same_o thing_n now_o as_o they_o do_v then_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o thy_o father_n iniquity_n which_o say_v they_o be_v jew_n and_o be_v not_o but_o be_v of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n thou_o say_v they_o must_v be_v learned_a man_n and_o bring_v up_o in_o scholastical_a way_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o must_v open_v the_o scripture_n because_o thou_o say_v they_o be_v first_o give_v forth_o in_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n which_o you_o call_v the_o original_a and_o therefore_o ignorant_a man_n can_v understand_v they_o but_o must_v have_v your_o meaning_n interpretation_n and_o dimension_n of_o your_o own_o brain_n and_o thus_o you_o deceive_v the_o simple_a but_o answer_v i_o this_o question_n whether_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o be_v write_v in_o english_a be_v true_a as_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n speak_v they_o forth_o and_o if_o they_o be_v true_a as_o they_o be_v in_o english_a what_o need_v any_o other_o language_n be_v learn_v by_o a_o english_a man_n to_o know_v they_o r._n h._n the_o quaker_n several_a question_n with_o the_o answer_n return_v r._n h._n for_o what_o relative_a title_n to_o give_v you_o without_o offence_n i_o understand_v not_o i_o receive_v your_o paper_n of_o many_o strange_a scrupulous_a question_n and_o though_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o one_o fool_n may_v ask_v more_o question_n than_o 100_o wise_a man_n can_v answer_v as_o the_o common_a proverb_n go_v yet_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o a_o more_o authentic_a proverb_n sometime_o prov._n 26.5_o to_o answer_v a_o fool_n in_o his_o folly_n lest_o he_o be_v wise_a in_o his_o own_o conceit_n i_o say_v not_o this_o to_o upbraid_v your_o person_n but_o with_o reflection_n on_o the_o folly_n and_o error_n display_v in_o your_o several_a question_n which_o will_v appear_v i_o believe_v in_o the_o follow_a answer_n if_o you_o read_v they_o as_o become_v a_o good_a christian_a without_o prejudice_n partiality_n or_o obstinacy_n of_o mind_n but_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o 1_o thess_n 5.21_o try_v all_o thing_n and_o hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a question_n 1_o whether_o your_o gospel_n be_v the_o same_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o if_o it_o be_v why_o go_v you_o to_o oxford_n or_o cambridge_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o gospel_n he_o preach_v be_v not_o after_o man_n neither_o be_v he_o teach_v it_o by_o man_n answer_v we_o preach_v the_o same_o gospel_n the_o apostle_n preach_v but_o do_v not_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n of_o this_o gospel_n by_o the_o same_o mean_n the_o apostle_n be_v eye-witness_n and_o ear-witness_n of_o the_o say_n and_o do_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o mystery_n whereof_o they_o understand_v by_o immediate_a revelation_n from_o heaven_n be_v both_o public_o visible_o and_o miraculous_o inspire_v with_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n act._n 2.1,2,3,4_o enable_v they_o both_o more_o full_o to_o understand_v and_o more_o powerful_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n school_n they_o have_v at_o bethel_n 2_o king_n 2.3_o at_o jericho_n v._o 5._o and_o elisha_n college_n be_v so_o full_a that_o they_o enlarge_v it_o 2_o king_n 6.1_o and_o at_o naioth_n 1_o sam._n 14.20_o and_o upon_o the_o hill_n of_o god_n 1_o sam._n 10.5,10_o than_o any_o mortal_a man_n can_v ever_o hope_v for_o since_o but_o we_o do_v neither_o pretend_v to_o any_o such_o sublime_a and_o eminent_a gift_n neither_o do_v we_o or_o ought_v we_o to_o depend_v upon_o any_o such_o immediate_a and_o miraculous_a revelation_n from_o heaven_n but_o do_v use_v those_o ordinary_a mean_n and_o help_n which_o god_n in_o his_o merciful_a providence_n have_v in_o all_o age_n afford_v his_o people_n viz._n by_o study_n and_o industry_n in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o prophet_n neither_o go_v we_o to_o oxford_n and_o cambridge_n to_o learn_v the_o gospel_n we_o preach_v but_o to_o learn_v the_o knowledge_n of_o those_o tongue_n and_o language_n art_n and_o science_n which_o be_v the_o external_a mean_n enable_v we_o to_o understand_v and_o open_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o good_a hand_n of_o god_n upon_o we_o prosper_v our_o labour_n and_o study_n to_o that_o end_n that_o be_v well_o ground_v in_o the_o truth_n we_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v and_o mistake_v the_o invention_n and_o error_n of_o man_n and_o doctrine_n of_o seduce_a spirit_n for_o 1_o tim._n 4.1,2_o the_o doctrine_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n even_o as_o you_o go_v to_o school_n to_o learn_v to_o write_v and_o read_v that_o you_o may_v read_v the_o scripture_n indeed_o but_o not_o 2_o pet._n 3.16_o pervert_v they_o to_o your_o own_o destruction_n and_o that_o you_o may_v write_v your_o mind_n in_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n but_o not_o to_o write_v scrupulous_a question_n to_o puzzle_v and_o poison_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o simple_a who_o can_v see_v into_o the_o depth_n of_o your_o delusion_n question_n 2_o whether_o you_o can_v give_v another_o meaning_n to_o the_o scripture_n than_o they_o be_v or_o whether_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o give_v the_o meaning_n to_o they_o when_o they_o speak_v they_o forth_o yea_o or_o no_o and_o if_o they_o do_v what_o need_v learned_a man_n give_v a_o meaning_n to_o they_o answer_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v involve_v and_o enfold_v in_o it_o even_o as_o the_o kernel_n of_o a_o nut_n be_v within_o the_o shell_n to_o find_v out_o which_o sense_n and_o declare_v it_o and_o make_v it_o appear_v from_o under_o those_o several_a kind_n of_o metaphorical_a and_o figurative_a expression_n which_o common_o clothe_v and_o cover_v it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o our_o task_n and_o duty_n and_o this_o we_o do_v by_o a_o serious_a diligent_a and_o intent_n search_v weigh_v and_o ponder_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n by_o compare_v and_o confer_v several_a place_n by_o observe_v the_o connexion_n and_n coherence_n by_o sincere_a and_o impartial_a collect_v and_o observe_v the_o several_a truth_n contain_v therein_o and_o also_o fly_v unto_o god_n by_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n for_o assistance_n in_o the_o work_n and_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o learned_a man_n to_o give_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o example_n of_o ezra_n the_o scribe_n that_o be_v the_o learned_a neh._n 8.4,5,6,7,8_o who_o stand_v upon_o a_o pulpit_n of_o wood_n high_a above_o all_o the_o people_n make_v purposely_o for_o preach_v and_o the_o levite_n cause_v the_o people_n to_o understand_v the_o law_n and_o this_o they_o do_v not_o only_o by_o read_v the_o law_n distinct_o but_o they_o give_v the_o sense_n say_v the_o text_n and_o cause_v the_o people_n to_o understand_v the_o read_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n christ_n himself_o take_v a_o text_n and_o preach_v upon_o it_o luk._n 4.17_o 22._o philip_n take_v the_o text_n which_o the_o eunuch_n read_v in_o esay_n and_o preach_v christ_n unto_o he_o act._n 8_o 30_o 37._o convert_v the_o eunuch_n by_o give_v the_o sense_n of_o
prayer_n to_o all_o nation_n mat._n 21.13_o 3._o that_o by_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n we_o may_v obtain_v the_o assistance_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n both_o first_o upon_o our_o labour_n in_o open_v the_o scripture_n and_o second_o upon_o the_o people_n duty_n in_o learning_n and_o attend_v thereunto_o the_o prayer_n before_o sermon_n refer_v to_o the_o one_o and_o after_o sermon_n to_o the_o other_o and_o in_o this_o question_n i_o must_v also_o further_o tell_v you_o you_o confound_v public_a and_o private_a prayer_n and_o thereby_o pervert_v and_o misapply_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 6.5_o when_o thou_o pray_v thou_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o the_o hypocrite_n for_o they_o love_v to_o pray_v stand_v in_o the_o synagogue_n etc._n etc._n that_o they_o may_v be_v see_v of_o man_n in_o which_o place_n our_o saviour_n forbid_v only_o private_a prayer_n to_o be_v offer_v in_o public_a place_n out_o of_o vainglory_n and_o ostentation_n to_o be_v see_v of_o man_n and_o you_o false_o apply_v they_o against_o public_a prayer_n which_o be_v both_o command_v and_o practise_v by_o public_a person_n and_o in_o public_a place_n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v be_v both_o see_v and_o hear_v of_o man_n see_v for_o this_o the_o example_n of_o the_o levite_n neh._n 8._o &_o 9.3,4_o both_o for_o preach_v neh._n 8._o and_o public_a pray_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n stand_v up_o upon_o the_o stair_n that_o they_o may_v be_v hear_v neh._n 9.3,4_o now_o rom._n 15.4_o act._n 20.36.21.5_o what_o be_v write_v afore_o time_n be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v both_o act._n 20.36_o 21.5_o prey_n in_o public_a for_o and_o with_o the_o people_n and_o also_o preach_v in_o public_a and_o in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v more_o than_o once_o or_o twice_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n question_n 8_o show_v i_o by_o the_o scripture_n when_o the_o apostle_n go_v into_o the_o world_n and_o give_v the_o people_n of_o the_o world_n david_n psalm_n to_o be_v sing_v in_o meet_a the_o thing_n that_o you_o practise_v answer_v they_o by_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o apostle_n practice_v without_o consequence_n or_o imagination_n answer_v touch_v the_o use_n of_o psalm_n in_o meet_a let_v i_o tell_v you_o because_o i_o see_v you_o understand_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o psalm_n that_o they_o be_v not_o proper_o call_v psalm_n if_o not_o sing_v in_o verse_n and_o meet_a and_o for_o david_n psalm_n as_o you_o too_o scornful_o call_v they_o know_v that_o they_o be_v the_o very_a dictate_v and_o breathe_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n therefore_o be_v we_o command_v to_o eph._n 5.18,19_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n speak_v to_o ourselves_o in_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n etc._n etc._n and_o whereas_o all_o thing_n in_o all_o psalm_n be_v not_o at_o all_o time_n appliable_a to_o all_o person_n yet_o there_o be_v something_o in_o every_o psalm_n appliable_a to_o every_o person_n either_o by_o way_n of_o instruction_n or_o devotion_n and_o what_o in_o this_o or_o that_o psalm_n be_v not_o appliable_a to_o our_o present_a condition_n may_v be_v hereafter_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v be_v use_v both_o for_o present_a devotion_n and_o benefit_n and_o also_o for_o the_o future_a that_o we_o may_v be_v thorough_o furnish_v with_o instruction_n and_o devotion_n against_o the_o time_n of_o need_n and_o for_o the_o apostle_n practise_v herein_o it_o be_v sufficient_a we_o have_v their_o command_n for_o sure_o what_o they_o command_v other_o they_o practise_v themselves_o you_o may_v see_v they_o do_v so_o act._n 16.25_o at_o midnight_n paul_n and_o silas_n pray_v and_o sing_v psalm_n unto_o god_n but_o herein_o you_o demand_v a_o answer_n without_o consequence_n or_o imagination_n you_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v without_o reason_n or_o judgement_n which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o you_o shall_v bid_v i_o read_v your_o paper_n of_o question_n without_o my_o eye_n question_n 9_o whether_o a_o man_n shall_v overcome_v the_o body_n of_o sin_n while_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n or_o no._n answer_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a whole_o and_o altogether_o to_o subdue_v it_o be_v overcome_v but_o not_o whole_o a_o conquer_a enemy_n may_v trouble_v there_o be_v still_o a_o war_n rom._n 5.23_o and_o the_o warfare_n endure_v until_o death_n rev._n 2.10_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o world_n for_o it_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o body_n of_o sin_n because_o there_o will_v be_v some_o relic_n of_o sin_n some_o rebellion_n of_o the_o flesh_n against_o the_o spirit_n while_o we_o carry_v this_o body_n of_o flesh_n about_o we_o and_o be_v compose_v of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n as_o a_o tree_n while_o there_o be_v life_n in_o it_o will_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n so_o the_o flesh_n while_o it_o be_v quicken_v with_o spirit_n of_o life_n will_v bring_v forth_o some_o kind_n of_o fleshly_a fruit_n or_o other_o which_o be_v clear_a from_o manifold_a text_n of_o scripture_n 1_o king_n 8.46_o job_n 14.4_o prov._n 20.9_o 1_o joh._n 1.8,10_o eccl._n 7.22_o question_n 10_o whether_o the_o curse_n be_v not_o upon_o he_o that_o preach_v another_o gospel_n than_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n preach_v yea_o or_o no._n answer_v it_o be_v most_o true_a there_o be_v a_o curse_n and_o a_o heavy_a curse_n too_o will_v fall_v upon_o they_o that_o either_o gal._n 1.6,7,8,9_o preach_v another_o gospel_n or_o else_o pervert_v and_o poison_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o gospel_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o i_o will_v to_o god_n neither_o you_o nor_o any_o of_o your_o sect_n and_o follower_n be_v either_o guilty_a of_o the_o sin_n or_o liable_a to_o the_o curse_n question_n 11_o whether_o any_o natural_a man_n can_v preach_v the_o gospel_n yea_o or_o no_o answer_v he_o can_v preach_v the_o gospel_n who_o understand_v it_o not_o and_o he_o that_o in_o some_o good_a measure_n understand_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o natural_a man_n because_o 1._o the_o content_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v 1_o cor._n 2.13_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o neither_o know_v they_o and_o 2._o because_o isa_n 11.2_o knowledge_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n especial_o of_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o which_o gift_n spiritual_a the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v through_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n endow_v some_o more_o plentiful_o some_o more_o spare_o according_a as_o god_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n blessing_n our_o study_n have_v impart_v unto_o we_o who_o 1_o cor._n 12.11_o distribute_v to_o every_o one_o several_o as_o he_o will_n question_n 12_o whether_o that_o any_o minister_n of_o god_n be_v make_v minister_n by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n or_o no_o show_v it_o i_o by_o the_o scripture_n answer_v there_o be_v no_o minister_n of_o god_n be_v or_o can_v be_v make_v so_o by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n only_o but_o by_o man_n in_o subordination_n to_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n for_o 1._o god_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n put_v it_o into_o our_o heart_n to_o use_v the_o mean_n to_o be_v qualify_v for_o so_o great_a a_o call_n 2._o he_o bless_v and_o prosper_v our_o study_n and_o endeavour_n for_o the_o attainment_n of_o those_o gift_n which_o qualify_v we_o for_o it_o 3._o he_o give_v we_o heart_n to_o imply_v those_o qualification_n in_o his_o service_n which_o gift_n and_o qualification_n be_v examine_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o more_o able_a learned_a and_o reverend_a father_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v so_o by_o they_o through_o 1_o tim._n 5.21,2_o tit._n 1.5_o fast_v prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n set_v apart_o to_o this_o office_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n though_o they_o be_v call_v of_o god_n immediate_o and_o by_o miracle_n to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o apostleship_n act._n 13.2,3_o which_o no_o man_n must_v hope_v for_o since_o yet_o even_o they_o be_v command_v by_o the_o elder_n to_o be_v send_v forth_o through_o fast_v prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n question_n 13_o show_v i_o it_o by_o the_o scripture_n whether_o a_o man_n shall_v grow_v up_o to_o that_o condition_n that_o he_o need_v no_o man_n teach_v he_o but_o the_o lord_n or_o no._n answer_v we_o must_v not_o look_v for_o any_o immediate_a extraordinary_a miraculous_a teach_n by_o revelation_n from_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o all_o man_n be_v teach_v of_o god_n too_o some_o more_o some_o less_o according_a as_o 1._o they_o have_v soul_n more_o or_o less_o capable_a of_o teach_v 2._o as_o they_o more_o or_o less_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v for_o our_o learning_n and_o instruction_n and_o according_a to_o our_o
prophet_n and_o false_a spirit_n often_o in_o the_o word_n command_v exhort_v admonish_v to_o beware_v of_o such_o not_o to_o give_v heed_n to_o such_o and_o not_o to_o believe_v every_o spirit_n but_o to_o try_v they_o 1_o tim._n 4.12_o mat._n 7.15_o 1_o joh._n 4.1_o question_n 18_o whether_o they_o be_v not_o seducer_n which_o tell_v people_n these_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n which_o god_n never_o command_v as_o sprinkle_v infant_n tell_v people_n of_o a_o sacrament_n which_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n for_o and_o draw_v they_o from_o the_o spirit_n within_o to_o follow_v your_o in_o agination_n and_o invention_n answer_v they_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o call_v humane_a invention_n god_n ordinance_n be_v seducer_n we_o confess_v but_o for_o the_o sprinkle_n infant_n as_o you_o scornful_o call_v baptism_n which_o be_v god_n ordinance_n for_o he_o have_v ordain_v and_o command_v it_o to_o be_v observe_v i_o have_v already_o give_v you_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o we_o call_v it_o a_o sacrament_n as_o be_v a_o term_n best_o express_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o which_o you_o will_v confess_v if_o you_o understand_v it_o and_o for_o the_o spirit_n within_o i_o have_v already_o tell_v you_o out_o of_o scripture_n that_o we_o be_v not_o blindfolded_a to_o follow_v the_o dictate_v thereof_o but_o to_o try_v they_o by_o the_o spirit_n speak_v in_o the_o word_n and_o thus_o to_o draw_v man_n from_o the_o spirit_n within_o be_v not_o to_o follow_v our_o own_o imagination_n since_o god_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n command_v the_o same_o question_n 19_o whether_o you_o have_v the_o same_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n the_o apostle_n acd_v prophet_n which_o give_v forth_o the_o scripture_n see_v you_o act_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o follow_v your_o own_o invention_n and_o tradition_n and_o so_o err_v from_o they_o answer_v they_o that_o do_v believe_v or_o act_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v not_o lead_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n but_o in_o say_v that_o we_o do_v this_o herein_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o you_o do_v false_o and_o flat_o belie_v we_o since_o both_o we_o can_v and_o you_o see_v we_o do_v prove_v our_o ministerial_a action_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n question_n 20_o whether_o ever_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v first_o baptise_v and_o then_o preach_v faith_n and_o repentance_n twenty_o or_o thirty_o year_n afterward_o answer_v christ_n himself_o be_v baptise_a being_n a_o person_n not_o capable_a of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n for_o he_o be_v above_o both_o heb._n 12.2_o of_o faith_n he_o be_v the_o author_n and_o finisher_n the_o person_n in_o who_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o of_o repentance_n he_o be_v not_o capable_a who_o know_v no_o sin_n and_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n sure_o it_o be_v to_o be_v our_o pattern_n and_o grand_a example_n joh._n 3.16_o 1_o pet._n 2.22_o the_o apostle_n also_o baptize_v many_o person_n who_o have_v not_o true_a faith_n and_o repentance_n but_o be_v hypocrite_n as_o simon_n magus_n alexander_n the_o coppersmith_n demas_n diotrephes_n and_o simon_n magus_n have_v repentance_n preach_v unto_o he_o after_o he_o be_v baptize_v many_o day_n as_o the_o text_n clear_o express_v act_n 8.13,22_o from_o all_o which_o example_n it_o be_v manifest_v that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v not_o necessary_o require_v of_o all_o person_n as_o to_o the_o reception_n of_o baptism_n but_o to_o the_o bless_a effect_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o pardon_v of_o sin_n etc._n etc._n 2._o neither_o be_v child_n also_o absolute_o and_o altogether_o destitute_a of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n they_o have_v these_o grace_n in_o the_o power_n though_o not_o in_o the_o act_n in_o the_o seed_n though_o not_o in_o the_o fruit_n in_o the_o promise_n for_o and_o in_o their_o behalf_n though_o not_o in_o the_o present_a actual_a performance_n therefore_o call_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n believer_n little_a one_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o leu._n 25_o 41,42_o mat._n 18.3,4,5,6,7_o act._n 16.33_o 18_o 8._o and_o under_o the_o general_a notion_n of_o family_n and_o household_n they_o be_v rank_v among_o person_n baptize_v convert_v and_o serve_v the_o lord_n question_n 21_o whether_o ever_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n receive_v 160_o or_o 200_o pound_n a_o year_n for_o preach_v the_o gospel_n answer_v christ_n himself_o when_o he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v maintain_v by_o the_o gift_n and_o benevolence_n of_o his_o auditor_n who_o minister_v unto_o he_o of_o their_o substance_n and_o the_o apostle_n for_o preach_v the_o gospel_n have_v more_o i_o believe_v then_o 100_o l._n or_o 200_o l._n a_o year_n mar._n 15.41_o for_o many_o of_o their_o convert_v sell_v all_o their_o estate_n and_o bring_v it_o and_o lay_v it_o down_o at_o the_o apostle_n foot_n for_o say_v the_o apostle_n if_o we_o have_v sow_o unto_o you_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v it_o a_o great_a matter_n if_o we_o reap_v your_o carnal_a thing_n act._n 4.34,37_o rom._n 15.27_o 1_o cor._n 9.11_o question_n 22_o what_o scripture_n be_v there_o to_o limit_n god_n to_o a_o place_n calling_z it_o a_o church_n when_o as_o the_o church_n be_v in_o god_n 1_o thes_n 1.1_o answer_v we_o do_v not_o limit_v god_n to_o a_o place_n who_o be_v every_o where_o and_o fill_v the_o world_n but_o yet_o after_o a_o special_a manner_n jer._n 23.23_o mat._n 18.20_o when_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n to_o worship_v he_o and_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n there_o be_v he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o this_o place_n of_o assembly_n we_o call_v a_o church_n because_o the_o church_n or_o people_n of_o god_n do_v there_o assemble_v to_o his_o service_n and_o it_o be_v a_o scripture_n term_v too_o though_o you_o know_v it_o not_o for_o as_o there_o be_v a_o church_n in_o god_n and_o in_o christ_n jesus_n 1_o thess_n 1.1_o 1_o thess_n 1.1_o that_o be_v person_n devote_v to_o god_n service_n in_o and_z through_o jesus_n christ_n so_o there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 11.22_o 1_o cor._n 11.22_o the_o place_n namely_o where_o such_o person_n do_v assemble_v and_o join_v in_o divine_a worship_n but_o since_o you_o cry_v down_o all_o distinction_n as_o savour_v of_o humane_a learning_n whereby_o the_o naked_a truth_n of_o thing_n may_v be_v clear_o and_o distinct_o see_v as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o without_o conjunction_n with_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n you_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o distinguish_v man_n from_o house_n person_n from_o place_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n from_o the_o place_n of_o his_o service_n question_n 23_o what_o scripture_n be_v there_o to_o have_v a_o clerk_n to_o say_v amen_o and_o to_o have_v groat_n a_o piece_n of_o the_o world_n for_o his_o trade_n answer_v it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o good_a people_n to_o say_v amen_o to_o every_o good_a prayer_n or_o what_o be_v speak_v tend_v either_o to_o god_n glory_n or_o their_o own_o good_a and_o this_o you_o shall_v find_v both_o command_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o scripture_n psal_n 106_o 46._o neb._n 8_o 6._o 2_o pet._n 3._o ult_n rev._n 22.20_o if_o you_o do_v but_o consult_v the_o marginal_a text_n i_o may_v therefore_o rather_o demand_v of_o you_o why_o do_v not_o rather_o all_o the_o people_n say_v amen_o than_o you_o ask_v of_o i_o why_o one_o man_n do_v so_o and_o for_o the_o groat_n he_o receive_v yearly_a of_o some_o person_n in_o the_o world_n who_o be_v not_o all_o of_o the_o world_n as_o you_o uncharitable_o censure_v they_o i_o conceive_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v so_o much_o for_o say_v amen_o as_o for_o many_o other_o office_n wherein_o he_o be_v useful_a both_o to_o pastor_n and_o people_n question_n 24,25,26_o what_o scripture_n be_v there_o for_o take_v money_n for_o bury_v the_o dead_a or_o to_o have_v ten_o or_o twelve_o shilling_n for_o preach_v a_o funeral_n sermon_n or_o to_o take_v money_n for_o marry_v man_n or_o woman_n answer_v for_o our_o pain_n in_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n give_v this_o general_a rule_n 2_o tim._n 5.17,18_o the_o labourer_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o wage_n and_o what_o their_o wage_n be_v for_o their_o particular_a pain_n and_o labour_n in_o this_o or_o that_o ministerial_a function_n whether_o more_a or_o less_o be_v not_o of_o our_o choose_n but_o partly_o the_o liberality_n of_o founder_n and_o benefactor_n partly_o custom_n among_o all_o people_n in_o all_o christian_a country_n have_v settle_v it_o question_n 27_o when_o do_v any_o that_o be_v send_v of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n sue_v man_n at_o the_o law_n answer_v we_o confess_v that_o to_o be_v contentious_a and_o
and_o semblance_n of_o revelation_n and_o infusion_n and_o qualification_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o this_o by_o sad_a experience_n we_o daily_o see_v to_o be_v too_o true_a and_o have_v appear_v in_o your_o several_a question_n now_o god_n almighty_a deliver_v you_o and_o all_o christian_a people_n from_o under_o the_o power_n of_o such_o delusion_n it_o be_v the_o daily_a prayer_n of_o your_o christian_a brother_n r._n s._n but_o foolish_a and_o unlearned_a question_n avoid_v know_v that_o they_o do_v gender_n strife_n 2_o tim._n 2.23_o a_o discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n his_o working_n and_o impression_n on_o the_o soul_n of_o men._n with_o large_a additional_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rectum_fw-la est_fw-la index_n svi_fw-la &_o obliqui_fw-la london_n print_v by_o e._n cotes_n for_o r._n royston_n at_o the_o angel_n in_o ivy-lane_n 1656._o to_o the_o true_o virtuous_a the_o lady_n rebecca_n bindlosse_n madam_n this_o follow_a discourse_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o impression_n and_o working_n on_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v first_o intend_v only_o for_o private_a satisfaction_n to_o your_o ladyship_n pious_a desire_n that_o be_v well_o ground_v in_o the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n and_o have_v a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o god_n it_o may_v be_v as_o a_o impregnable_a bulwark_n against_o so_o many_o suggestion_n and_o temptation_n of_o the_o false_a and_o deceitful_a spirit_n for_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v either_o devoid_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o holiness_n or_o else_o of_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n spirit_n who_o be_v the_o fountain_n both_o of_o grace_n and_o truth_n be_v too_o apt_a and_o prone_a to_o close_v with_o the_o suggestion_n of_o the_o evil_a spirit_n who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o promoter_n of_o sinfulness_n and_o error_n never_o age_n produce_v so_o many_o spiritual_a monster_n as_o this_o wherein_o we_o live_v and_o i_o think_v few_o part_n of_o england_n be_v so_o much_o infect_v with_o they_o as_o these_o northern_a part_n be_v they_o be_v very_o impudent_a and_o dare_a when_o they_o adventure_v to_o tempt_v your_o virtuous_a mind_n and_o by_o entice_a word_n to_o allure_v your_o good_a opinion_n os_fw-la they_o as_o full_a well_o know_v if_o they_o can_v but_o have_v effect_v thus_o much_o to_o have_v make_v you_o not_o a_o enemy_n to_o their_o proceed_n though_o you_o do_v not_o close_o with_o they_o it_o will_v have_v give_v much_o lustre_n and_o credit_n to_o their_o erroneous_a sect_n but_o god_n be_v praise_v that_o you_o be_v better_o ground_v then_o to_o be_v proselyte_v by_o such_o ignoramo_n better_a resolve_v then_o to_o be_v take_v with_o such_o shallow_a delusion_n which_o a_o good_a christian_n with_o half_a a_o eye_n unprejudiced_a may_v easy_o see_v through_o it_o be_v your_o goodness_n for_o bonum_fw-la quo_fw-la melius_fw-la eo_fw-la communius_fw-la to_o desire_v the_o public_a communication_n of_o this_o short_a discourse_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o a_o doctrine_n both_o seasonable_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o many_o spread_a infectious_a error_n so_o much_o prevail_v among_o we_o and_o also_o necessary_a as_o a_o antidote_n against_o that_o contagion_n which_o issue_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o hell_n presume_v most_o impudent_o and_o impious_o to_o hide_v its_o venom_n under_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n i_o can_v wish_v the_o doctrine_n be_v for_o this_o end_n more_o full_o and_o satisfactory_o clear_v to_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n by_o the_o pen_n of_o some_o more_o judicious_a writer_n this_o mean_a tract_n the_o author_n in_o all_o humility_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o many_o defect_n and_o impertinency_n and_o himself_o one_o of_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o faithful_a and_o obedient_a son_n of_o the_o church_n the_o small_a acceptance_n it_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o world_n will_v be_v derive_v from_o your_o white_a name_n and_o virtue_n in_o which_o sanctuary_n it_o may_v escape_v the_o black-mouthed_a detraction_n of_o the_o censorious_a and_o rest_v secure_a of_o the_o good_a acceptance_n if_o not_o benefit_n of_o other_o may_v you_o be_v every_o day_n more_o happy_a in_o the_o increase_n of_o all_o christian_a virtue_n grow_v up_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o persevere_v in_o the_o constant_a profession_n of_o his_o holy_a truth_n and_o conscientious_a practice_n of_o the_o same_o till_o you_o arrive_v at_o the_o haven_n of_o true_a happiness_n this_o madam_n shall_v be_v the_o constant_a endeavour_n and_o be_v the_o daily_a prayer_n of_o your_o most_o faithful_a and_o affectionate_a servant_n in_o christ_n r._n sherlock_n errata_n pag._n lin._n read_v 1_o 9_o what_o 7_o 9_o substance_n 21_o 20_o pastionis_fw-la 58_o 9_o conservation_n 74_o 5_o a_o voice_n  _fw-fr 9_o the_o wind_n  _fw-fr 10_o his_o will_v into_o their_o heart_n 88_o 2_o 15_o ch_z 91_o 17_o to_o be_v offer_v 95_o 13_o unlawful_a 96_o 17_o to_o become_v 98_o 31_o world_n 101_o 3_o when_o 102_o 25_o recite_v 104_o 5_o our_o 106_o 4_o unlearned_a  _fw-fr 8_o learning_n  _fw-fr 14_o who_o be_v honour_v 107_o 5_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 124_o 14_o watch_n 124_o 35_o onmity_n 127_o 18_o act_n 128_o 11_o conscious_a 145_o 8_o maximilla_n 148_o 5_o no_o need_v of_o teach_v 156_o 11_o these_o 158_o 3_o  _fw-fr 171_o 9_o i_o  _fw-fr 8_o levit._fw-la 173_o 22_o not_o necessary_a 179_o 19_o thus_o 193_o 1_o to_o be_v contentious_a  _fw-fr 30_o sick_a 201_o 32_o photinus_n 212_o 13_o by_o out_o  _fw-fr 18_o our_o 213_o 5_o even_o 225_o 34_o these_o 231_o 15_o from_o 234_o 18_o your_o the_o introduction_n and_o general_a head_n of_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n no_o age_n have_v ever_o bring_v forth_o more_o pretender_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n than_o this_o wherein_o we_o live_v and_o among_o this_o generation_n there_o be_v many_o so_o ignorant_a that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o that_o spirit_n whereunto_o they_o so_o much_o pretend_v but_o blindfolded_a suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o they_o know_v not_o who_o and_o with_o the_o hoodwink_v samaritan_n they_o worship_v they_o know_v not_o who_o 4.32_o joh._n 4.32_o who_o ignorance_n accompany_v with_o excessive_a pride_n of_o heart_n which_o make_v their_o ignorance_n the_o great_a that_o through_o pride_n they_o will_v not_o know_v or_o acknowledge_v it_o upon_o this_o ground_n the_o devil_n have_v sow_o his_o crop_n and_o reap_v his_o harvest_n even_o the_o curse_a tare_n of_o many_o and_o strong_a delusion_n for_o that_o subtle_a serpent_n full_a well_o know_v how_o both_o easy_o and_o powerful_o to_o infinuate_v his_o lie_n and_o error_n into_o mind_n unsettle_a and_o not_o ground_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n so_o that_o most_o true_o be_v that_o complaint_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n hosea_n verify_v of_o this_o people_n hos_fw-la 4.6_o 6._o hos_fw-la 4_o 6._o my_o people_n be_v destroy_v for_o lack_n of_o knowledge_n even_o for_o lack_v of_o what_o they_o so_o much_o boast_v of_o that_o grand_a enemy_n the_o prince_n of_o lie_n have_v take_v they_o in_o the_o very_a net_n themselves_o have_v make_v even_o in_o the_o snare_n of_o self-conceited_a knowledge_n and_o holiness_n while_o suppose_v themselves_o wise_a they_o become_v fool_n 1.22_o rom._n 1.22_o and_o pretend_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o they_o right_o know_v not_o they_o be_v entrap_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o miserable_o seduce_v to_o the_o ruin_n of_o their_o soul_n hence_o it_o be_v chief_o though_o not_o only_o hence_o through_o ignorance_n intermix_v with_o pride_n that_o the_o devil_n have_v make_v so_o great_a a_o harvest_n of_o tare_n overgrow_a and_o choke_v the_o pure_a wheat_n of_o truth_n 13.25_o mat._n 13.25_o no_o age_n of_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o be_v so_o fruitful_a in_o heresy_n and_o error_n while_o the_o ever_o bless_a name_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v abuse_v by_o person_n most_o impudent_o pretend_v to_o he_o that_o yet_o remain_v ignorant_a of_o he_o for_o have_v they_o know_v this_o lord_n of_o life_n it_o have_v not_o be_v possible_a the_o spirit_n of_o delusion_n can_v have_v prevail_v so_o far_o with_o they_o as_o to_o infix_v so_o many_o lie_v imposture_n and_o blasphemy_n upon_o his_o score_n as_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n direct_v the_o athenian_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n 17.23_o act._n 17.23_o who_o they_o ignorant_o worship_v and_o so_o their_o pious_a intention_n through_o ignorance_n degenerate_v into_o gross_a idolatry_n so_o it_o can_v but_o be_v a_o office_n both_o seasonable_a and_o charitable_a as_o also_o of_o great_a benefit_n and_o present_a necessity_n plain_o to_o set_v down_o and_o deliver_v the_o true_a orthodoxal_a doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o
in_o relation_n to_o we_o 1._o his_o person_n in_o the_o term_n spirit_n 2._o his_o office_n in_o the_o attribute_n holy_a sanctus_n dicitur_fw-la quia_fw-la sanctificat_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la quia_fw-la spiratus_fw-la he_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o his_o office_n which_o be_v to_o sanctify_v or_o make_v holy_a and_o the_o spirit_n from_o his_o person_n which_o be_v spire_v or_o proceed_v first_o the_o holy_a not_o holy_a only_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o person_n as_o be_v also_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n which_o be_v employ_v in_o that_o celestial_a trisagion_n perpetual_o sing_v by_o the_o choir_n of_o heaven_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o ever_o bless_a trinity_n esai_n 6.3_o holy_a holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n of_o host_n etc._n etc._n holy_a three_o time_n to_o denote_v the_o holiness_n of_o all_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n holy_a father_n holy_a son_n holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o holy_a particular_o and_o peculiar_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n which_o be_v to_o sanctify_v and_o hallow_v most_o especial_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n as_o to_o god_n the_o father_n be_v appropriate_v the_o work_n of_o creation_n who_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o almighty_a the_o omnipotence_n or_o almightiness_n of_o god_n be_v most_o apparent_a in_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o as_o to_o god_n the_o son_n be_v appropriate_v the_o work_n of_o redemption_n who_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n joh._n 1.1_o and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n 1_o cor._n 1.24_o god_n manifold_a wisdom_n be_v make_v apparent_a in_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n for_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n which_o the_o very_a angel_n themselves_o desire_v to_o look_v into_o 1_o pet._n 1.12_o even_o so_o the_o work_n of_o sanctification_n be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o holy_a one_o god_n holiness_n be_v most_o apparent_a in_o purify_n and_o sanctify_v the_o unhallowed_a soul_n of_o man_n isai_n 10.17_o and_o the_o light_n of_o israel_n shall_v be_v for_o a_o fire_n and_o his_o holy_a one_o for_o a_o flame_n bonav_n bonav_n spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n est_fw-la lumen_fw-la illuminans_fw-la sanctus_fw-la sanctificans_fw-la flammáque_fw-la inflamman_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v that_o divine_a light_n which_o illuminate_v our_o darken_a understanding_n that_o holy_a one_o who_o sanctify_v our_o soul_n and_o pollute_a heart_n that_o sacred_a and_o celestial_a fire_n which_o inflame_v our_o cold_a earthly_a affection_n even_o as_o of_o old_a he_o enlighten_v sanctify_a and_o inflame_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o his_o descension_n not_o only_o with_o a_o rush_a wind_n which_o purify_v and_o cleanse_v but_o also_o in_o tongue_n of_o fire_n which_o warm_v and_o enlighten_v act._n 2.23_o the_o spirit_n not_o only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o spirit_n express_v his_o personal_a essence_n receive_v from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n by_o spiration_n and_o procession_n even_o as_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n receive_v his_o personal_a essence_n from_o the_o father_n only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o generation_n and_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o son_n be_v of_o the_o father_n alone_o not_o make_v nor_o create_v but_o beget_v so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n receive_v his_o personal_a essence_n from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o procession_n or_o spiration_n and_o be_v therefore_o term_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n not_o make_v nor_o create_v nor_o beget_v but_o proceed_v proceed_v from_o the_o father_n 8.14_o joh._n 15.26_o gal._n 2.6_o rom._n 8.14_o and_o therefore_o often_o term_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o often_o term_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n proceed_v both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o term_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o further_o in_o either_o of_o these_o term_n the_o holy_a and_o the_o spirit_n both_o the_o personal_a essence_n and_o also_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v employ_v for_o 1._o he_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o holy_a not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n as_o before_o 3._o lib._n 2._o cap._n 3._o but_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a essence_n for_o therefore_o say_v isidore_n in_o his_o original_n be_v he_o call_v the_o holy_a because_o he_o be_v the_o coessential_a and_o consubstantial_a holiness_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 2._o he_o be_v therefore_o term_v the_o spirit_n not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a essence_n as_o before_o but_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n which_o be_v to_o inspire_v and_o infuse_v his_o divine_a and_o celestial_a blessing_n into_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o from_o the_o name_n also_o of_o this_o divine_a person_n the_o spirit_n we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n and_o firm_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o in_o all_o respect_v coaequal_a and_o coaeternal_a so_o that_o as_o the_o father_n be_v god_n and_o the_o son_n be_v god_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n and_o as_o the_o father_n be_v almighty_a and_o the_o son_n almighty_n so_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n almighty_a and_o so_o of_o all_o the_o other_o attribute_n of_o the_o godhead_n whereupon_o all_o act_n of_o divine_a worship_n also_o be_v equal_o due_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n who_o together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v worship_v and_o glorify_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o this_o holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o other_o sacred_a person_n of_o the_o godhead_n consist_v in_o 3_o particular_n 1._o that_o he_o be_v the_o three_o or_o last_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n the_o three_o not_o in_o dignity_n but_o in_o order_n only_o not_o in_o diversity_n of_o essence_n or_o inaequality_n of_o majesty_n but_o in_o order_n of_o subsist_v which_o against_o arrian_n socinian_o etc._n etc._n be_v firm_o to_o be_v believe_v according_a to_o that_o decree_n of_o the_o three_o toledan_a council_n quicunque_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la non_fw-la credit_n aut_fw-la non_fw-la crediderit_fw-la à_fw-la patre_fw-la &_o filio_fw-la procedere_fw-la eumque_fw-la non_fw-la dixerit_fw-la patri_fw-la &_o filio_fw-la coaeternum_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o coessentialem_fw-la anathema_n sit_v that_o be_v whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n viz._n to_o be_v a_o real_a true_a subsist_v person_n and_o do_v not_o believe_v he_o also_o to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o to_o be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n coaeternal_a and_o consubstantial_a let_v he_o be_v accurse_v 2._o the_o second_o difference_n be_v the_o way_n of_o this_o holy_a person_n subsist_v viz._n by_o spiration_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n touch_v the_o manner_n whereof_o we_o must_v say_v as_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n do_v of_o the_o son_n generation_n from_o the_o father_n isai_n 53.8_o who_o shall_v declare_v his_o generation_n it_o be_v not_o only_o ineffable_a not_o to_o be_v declare_v but_o unconceivable_a also_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n conceive_v it_o not_o neither_o can_v the_o tongue_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n express_v it_o aug._n aug._n inter_fw-la illam_fw-la generationem_fw-la &_o hanc_fw-la processionem_fw-la distinguere_fw-la nescio_fw-la non_fw-la valeo_fw-la non_fw-la sufficio_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o illa_fw-la &_o ista_fw-la est_fw-la ineffabilis_fw-la that_o be_v to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o generation_n of_o god_n the_o son_n and_o the_o procession_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v impossible_a because_o both_o the_o one_o and_o other_o be_v for_o the_o manner_n thereof_o unspeakable_a 3._o but_o three_o hoc_fw-la autem_fw-la interest_n say_v isidore_n ibid._n isid_n ibid._n inter_fw-la nascentem_fw-la filium_fw-la etc._n etc._n betwixt_o the_o son_n of_o god_n generation_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n procession_n there_o be_v this_o difference_n indeed_o that_o the_o son_n be_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n procedens_fw-la non_fw-la genitus_fw-la etc._n etc._n proceed_v not_o beget_v to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o son_n proceed_v not_o unbegotten_a to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o father_n the_o which_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v lest_o contrary_a to_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n we_o shall_v admit_v either_o of_o two_o son_n or_o two_o father_n in_o the_o ever_o bless_a trinity_n or_o any_o way_n confound_v the_o several_a person_n therein_o as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o distinct_a each_o from_o other_o real_o
but_o nominal_o only_a and_o in_o relation_n to_o we_o which_o be_v the_o error_n of_o the_o patripassian_o and_o other_o strike_v at_o by_o that_o clause_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n so_o there_o be_v one_o father_n not_o three_o father_n one_o son_n not_o three_o son_n one_o holy_a gh●st_n not_o three_o holy_a ghost_n distinction_n 3_o three_o that_o we_o may_v not_o confound_v the_o person_n and_o the_o office_n of_o this_o ever_o bless_a spirit_n of_o god_n but_o right_o understand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 6.4_o act_n 9.2_o psal_n 2.4_o heb._n 6.4_o and_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o scripture_n which_o speak_v of_o have_v the_o spirit_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o like_a we_o must_v in_o the_o three_o place_n right_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o personal_a essence_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o impression_n or_o working_n of_o this_o spirit_n upon_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n catec_fw-la rac._n catec_fw-la it_o be_v the_o error_n of_o the_o macedonian_n samosatenian_o of_o old_a and_o of_o socinian_o of_o late_a that_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v mean_v no_o other_o but_o virtus_fw-la seu_fw-la efficacia_fw-la quâ_fw-la homines_fw-la fideles_fw-la sanctificantur_fw-la &_o divinis_fw-la usibus_fw-la consecrantur_fw-la i.e._n that_o virtue_n or_o efficacy_n whereby_o faithful_a man_n be_v sanctify_v and_o consecrate_v to_o divine_a office_n and_o opposite_a to_o this_o extreme_a many_o now_o a_o day_n run_v into_o the_o other_o mistake_v and_o misterm_v the_o efficacy_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o spirit_n himself_o the_o holy_a orthodox_n truth_n lie_v couch_v up_o betwixt_o these_o two_o extreme_n while_o neither_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n we_o presume_v to_o annihilate_v the_o personal_a be_v of_o the_o spirit_n as_o if_o he_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o virtue_n or_o influence_n upon_o the_o creature_n nor_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n mistake_v the_o influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o his_o essential_a subsist_v person_n and_o when_o you_o read_v in_o holy_a scripture_n of_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 139._o act._n 8.17_o eph._n 5.18_o wisd_v 1._o psal_n 139._o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o spirit_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a essence_n for_o thus_o he_o fill_v the_o world_n and_o contain_v all_o thing_n be_v real_o existent_a and_o present_a in_o and_o with_o all_o thing_n and_o creature_n give_v unto_o all_o their_o life_n and_o breath_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o who_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v 17._o act._n 17._o viz._n by_o his_o inexi_a presence_n and_o this_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a essence_n if_o we_o shall_v say_v then_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v in_o his_o saint_n and_o servant_n here_o upon_o earth_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n than_o in_o other_o man_n personal_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o essence_n we_o shall_v so_o divide_v and_o consequent_o define_v and_o limit_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n which_o be_v undivided_a infinite_a and_o unlimited_a see_v jer._n 23.23_o be_o i_o a_o god_n at_o hand_n and_o not_o a_o god_n a_o far_o off_o can_v any_o hide_v himself_o in_o secret_a place_n that_o i_o shall_v not_o see_v he_o for_o do_v not_o i_o fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n say_v the_o lord_n thus_o than_o those_o scripture_n phrase_n of_o receiviag_n the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o spirit_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o personal_a essence_n which_o be_v undivided_a unlimited_a and_o fill_v all_o thing_n and_o so_o not_o one_o man_n more_o than_o another_o but_o 2._o in_o respect_n of_o his_o impression_n and_o working_n on_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o gift_n and_o grace_n which_o be_v various_a and_o divers_a and_o carry_v their_o name_n from_o the_o cause_n or_o author_n of_o they_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 12.4_o where_o the_o spirit_n be_v plain_o distinguish_v from_o his_o gift_n as_o the_o cause_n from_o the_o effect_n the_o workman_n from_o the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n or_o as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o light_n and_o heat_n which_o be_v dart_v and_o display_v from_o it_o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v the_o spirit_n be_v but_o one_o but_o his_o gift_n be_v divers_a we_o may_v hence_o observe_v that_o if_o we_o shall_v confound_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o the_o gift_n and_o qualification_n dispense_v from_o he_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o acknowledge_v and_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n which_o be_v but_o one_o that_o we_o shall_v fall_v into_o that_o gross_a idolatry_n of_o the_o heathen_n of_o old_a make_v as_o many_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o they_o make_v god_n who_o deify_v the_o moral_a virtue_n and_o worship_v their_o several_a virtuous_a qualification_n as_o god_n the_o unwary_a neglect_n of_o this_o distinction_n betwixt_o the_o person_n and_o qualification_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v that_o very_a rock_n whereupon_o many_o a_o misguide_a and_o unstable_a soul_n have_v suffer_v the_o shipwreck_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n for_o be_v by_o the_o cunning_a suggestion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o lie_n once_o persuade_v in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o that_o personal_o abide_v in_o they_o they_o be_v hereupon_o puff_v up_o with_o such_o a_o excessive_a spiritual_a pride_n and_o self-conceited_a eminence_n as_o not_o only_o to_o exalt_v themselves_o above_o and_o despise_v their_o christian_a brethren_n who_o be_v better_a qualify_v than_o themselves_o but_o even_o to_o extol_v themselves_o above_o the_o heaven_n and_o most_o blasphemous_o to_o profess_v and_o boast_v of_o a_o equality_n with_o god_n a_o blasphemy_n however_o it_o be_v salve_v and_o mince_v that_o can_v be_v parallel_v but_o with_o that_o original_a pride_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o say_v in_o his_o heart_n i_o will_v be_v like_o the_o most_o high_a 3._o gen._n 3._o and_o to_o this_o he_o tempt_v our_o first_o parent_n persuade_v they_o to_o rebel_v against_o their_o maker_n and_o become_v as_o god_n themselves_o know_v good_a and_o evil_a this_o be_v the_o very_a sin_n that_o hurl_v lucifer_n like_o lightning_n from_o heaven_n his_o pride_n and_o presumption_n to_o be_v like_o the_o most_o high_a and_o therefore_o with_o all_o his_o apostate_n crew_n he_o be_v now_o reserve_v in_o everlasting_a chain_n under_o darkness_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n 6._o judas_n 6._o and_o for_o our_o new_a sect_n of_o enthusiast_n have_v they_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o they_o pretend_v abide_v in_o they_o and_o speak_v in_o they_o personal_o and_o essential_o this_o blasphemy_n must_v necessary_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o as_o themselves_o affirm_v it_o though_o not_o as_o george_n robert_n etc._n etc._n to_o avoid_v which_o blasphemy_n and_o many_o other_o absurd_a and_o wicked_a opinion_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n which_o will_v follow_v thereupon_o and_o wherewith_o too_o many_o unstable_a soul_n be_v now_o infect_v we_o must_v remember_v that_o to_o have_v the_o spirit_n in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o personal_a essence_n but_o of_o his_o qualification_n and_o because_o this_o distinction_n be_v very_o material_a as_o to_o the_o many_o present_a delusion_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o spirit_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a therefore_o to_o clear_v it_o by_o some_o scripture_n expression_n in_o this_o kind_n it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a piece_n of_o rhetoric_n and_o a_o usual_a figure_n in_o the_o dialect_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o call_v the_o gift_n and_o qualification_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o exod._n 31.2,3_o behold_v i_o have_v call_v by_o name_n bezaleel_n the_o son_n of_o uri_n etc._n etc._n 31.2,3_o exod._n 31.2,3_o who_o i_o have_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o be_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o it_o follow_v in_o all_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n and_o knowledge_n and_o in_o all_o workmanship_n so_o numb_a 11.17_o i_o will_v come_v down_o and_o talk_v with_o thou_o and_o take_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v upon_o thou_o and_o put_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v bear_v the_o burden_n with_o thou_o 11.17_o numb_a 11.17_o where_o what_o else_o can_v possible_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v upon_o moses_n to_o be_v put_v upon_o the_o elder_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v partake_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a gift_n with_o moses_n enfit_v
immediate_a inspiration_n than_o the_o best_a of_o man_n can_v hope_v for_o since_o and_o yet_o though_o we_o study_v to_o be_v qualify_v for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n our_o qualification_n be_v still_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n all_o our_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n be_v from_o above_o even_o as_o of_o daniel_n and_o the_o three_o child_n it_o be_v record_v that_o god_n give_v they_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n in_o all_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n dan._n 1.17_o 1.17.4_o dan._n 1.17.4_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v say_v before_o vers_fw-la the_o 4._o that_o they_o be_v bring_v up_o and_o instruct_v in_o knowledge_n and_o that_o by_o and_o among_o the_o heathen_a too_o and_o be_v teach_v the_o learning_n and_o tongue_n of_o the_o caldaean_o so_o our_o humane_a learning_n tongue_n and_o language_n so_o much_o declaim_v against_o by_o the_o ignorant_a be_v the_o handmaid_n to_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n and_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o though_o acquire_v by_o instruction_n and_o study_n in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v yet_o of_o god_n merciful_a donation_n they_o be_v still_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o first_o because_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n it_o be_v that_o we_o have_v mind_n capable_a and_o mind_n inclinable_a to_o use_v the_o mean_n for_o the_o attainment_n of_o such_o gift_n for_o even_o our_o natural_a endowment_n and_o moral_a qualification_n be_v gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n perspicacity_n quickness_n of_o wit_n ripeness_n of_o judgement_n together_o with_o a_o studious_a diligent_a and_o industrious_a mind_n in_o the_o search_n and_o dexterity_n in_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o several_a way_n of_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n even_o all_o of_o they_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n for_o every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n whether_o natural_a moral_a or_o divine_a 3.27_o jam._n 1.17_o joh._n 3.27_o come_v down_o from_o above_o jam._n 1.17_o for_o a_o man_n can_v receive_v nothing_o except_o it_o be_v give_v from_o above_o joh._n 3.27_o the_o very_a speak_v of_o a_o ordinary_a reveal_v truth_n be_v call_v a_o speak_n by_o the_o spirit_n for_o no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o the_o revelation_n of_o this_o as_o of_o every_o truth_n be_v from_o the_o spirit_n original_o and_o from_o he_o also_o be_v both_o the_o power_n and_o the_o act_n of_o this_o confession_n second_o our_o qualification_n though_o acquire_v by_o study_n be_v yet_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o it_o be_v by_o god_n blessing_n and_o the_o influence_n of_o his_o good_a spirit_n upon_o our_o study_n and_o endeavour_n that_o we_o do_v acquire_v these_o qualification_n and_o it_o be_v general_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o god_n distribute_v his_o gift_n and_o blessing_n according_a to_o man_n inclination_n aptness_n and_o endeavour_n for_o the_o reception_n of_o his_o gift_n habitus_n infusi_fw-la infunduntur_fw-la per_fw-la modum_fw-la acquisitorum_fw-la all_o infuse_a or_o inspire_v gift_n be_v infuse_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o gift_n acquire_v i.e._n as_o we_o be_v more_o or_o less_o industrious_a to_o acquire_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n according_o so_o they_o be_v more_o or_o less_o give_v and_o communicate_v to_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v signify_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o hide_a treasure_n mat._n 13.4_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o treasure_n hide_v in_o a_o field_n the_o which_o when_o a_o man_n have_v find_v he_o hide_v and_o for_o joy_n thereof_o go_v and_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v and_o buy_v that_o field_n the_o treasure_n find_v without_o search_n denote_v god_n free_a and_o gratuitous_a revelation_n of_o himself_o unto_o we_o and_o the_o sell_n of_o all_o to_o buy_v that_o field_n signify_v a_o man_n utmost_a endeavour_n and_o labour_n to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o these_o divine_a revelation_n three_o because_o the_o qualification_n acquire_v by_o study_n be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n himself_o direct_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v to_o profit_v withal_o and_o then_o be_v god_n blessing_n the_o great_a and_o the_o influence_n of_o his_o spirit_n upon_o our_o study_n the_o more_o effectual_a and_o powerful_a when_o we_o have_v in_o they_o no_o other_o aim_n or_o intention_n but_o to_o be_v thereby_o enfitted_a and_o enable_v to_o become_v useful_a instrument_n of_o god_n service_n and_o his_o people_n edification_n and_o both_o in_o that_o we_o do_v direct_v our_o study_n to_o this_o end_n and_o also_o employ_v our_o gift_n acquire_v by_o study_n to_o this_o end_n also_o it_o be_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o work_v in_o we_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v of_o his_o own_o god_n pleasure_n phil._n 2.15_o 2.15_o phil._n 2.15_o and_o last_o all_o this_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o our_o gift_n in_o all_o these_o respect_n be_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n though_o study_v for_o in_o that_o together_o with_o those_o mean_n that_o be_v outward_a and_o moral_a we_o use_v the_o divine_a mean_n also_o viz._n prayer_n and_o devotion_n command_v jam._n 1.15_o if_o any_o man_n lack_v wisdom_n let_v he_o ask_v it_o of_o god_n who_o give_v to_o all_o man_n liberal_o and_o upbraid_v not_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v he_o 1.5_o jam._n 1.5_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o their_o gift_n be_v from_o the_o spirit_n be_v yet_o bind_v to_o use_v all_o mean_n both_o moral_a and_o divine_a for_o the_o acquire_v thereof_o be_v manifest_a even_o from_o god_n own_o example_n in_o the_o use_n of_o their_o ministry_n in_o that_o god_n himself_o who_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o mean_n neither_o have_v need_n of_o any_o be_v yet_o please_v to_o use_v the_o mean_n and_o ministry_n of_o some_o man_n for_o the_o instruction_n and_o conversion_n of_o other_o there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o he_o who_o at_o the_o first_o create_v man_n after_o his_o own_o image_n can_v without_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n have_v again_o repair_v the_o decay_n of_o his_o bless_a image_n in_o man_n but_o yet_o in_o all_o age_n it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n to_o use_v the_o mediation_n and_o ministry_n of_o man_n herein_o and_o this_o he_o do_v out_o of_o his_o tender_a respect_n to_o man_n infirmity_n consider_v the_o vast_a distance_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n 12.19_o exod._n 20.19_o deut._n 5.27_o &_o 18.16_o heb._n 12.19_o which_o move_v the_o israelite_n to_o petition_v for_o a_o minister_n betwixt_o god_n and_o they_o exod._n 20.19_o talk_v thou_o with_o we_o and_o we_o will_v hear_v but_o let_v not_o god_n talk_v with_o we_o lest_o we_o die_v as_o therefore_o no_o minister_n of_o god_n may_v think_v that_o god_n use_v his_o ministry_n because_o he_o need_v it_o so_o neither_o may_v the_o people_n think_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o minister_n because_o god_n use_v they_o and_o he_o use_v they_o as_o subordinate_a fellow-labourer_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o man_n salvation_n 4.16_o gal._n 4.19_o 2_o cor._n 3.2_o mat._n 16.19_o 1_o tim._n 4.16_o the_o minister_n be_v say_v to_o beget_v man_n unto_o christ_n to_o nourish_v they_o in_o christ_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v their_o soul_n to_o open_a and_o shut_v heaven_n and_o in_o a_o word_n to_o save_v because_o all_o these_o thing_n christ_n do_v by_o they_o they_o be_v causa_fw-la conjuncta_fw-la 3.2,3_o 2_o cor._n 3.2,3_o cooperate_a with_o and_o under_o christ_n so_o paul_n compare_v his_o corinthian_n to_o a_o write_a epistle_n the_o author_n whereof_o be_v himself_o and_o the_o spirit_n the_o external_a writing_n be_v he_o the_o internal_a seal_n upon_o their_o heart_n be_v the_o spirit_n these_o two_o then_o may_v not_o be_v sever_v neither_o 1._o may_v we_o look_v for_o inspiration_n from_o heaven_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n upon_o earth_n nor_o yet_o 2._o may_v we_o imagine_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n upon_o earth_n can_v be_v effectual_a without_o inspiration_n from_o heaven_n chap._n vii_o of_o those_o operation_n and_o impression_n that_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o we_o to_o know_v the_o truth_n but_o also_o by_o that_o right_n and_o straight_o line_n to_o observe_v and_o discover_v what_o be_v repugnant_a and_o contrary_a thereunto_o let_v we_o remember_v what_o by_o sad_a and_o lamentable_a experience_n we_o daily_o see_v and_o hear_v that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a and_o a_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n by_o his_o gift_n and_o grace_n work_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n so_o there_o be_v also_o a_o evil_a and_o a_o bad_a spirit_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o uncleanness_n the_o devil_n who_o
the_o coherence_n whether_o that_o be_v the_o very_a intent_n and_o aim_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o text_n for_o the_o which_o it_o be_v urge_v and_o allege_v for_o the_o same_o word_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v misapply_v both_o to_o other_o thing_n and_o other_o person_n than_o the_o spirit_n ever_o mean_v or_o intend_v therein_o rule_n 2_o second_o distinguish_v betwixt_o time_n age_n person_n when_o wherein_o and_o to_o who_o this_o or_o that_o word_n be_v speak_v for_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n both_o say_v and_o record_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o word_n which_o be_v only_o agreeable_a to_o those_o time_n to_o that_o age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o some_o particular_a person_n and_o be_v not_o at_o all_o appliable_a to_o the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o time_n or_o to_o any_o person_n among_o we_o rule_n 3_o three_o examine_v diligent_o the_o phrase_n and_o manner_n of_o speech_n whether_o it_o be_v plain_a or_o metaphorical_a literal_a or_o allegorical_a a_o true_a history_n or_o a_o parable_n only_o for_o many_o thing_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o word_n by_o way_n of_o type_n figure_n allegory_n parable_n and_o the_o like_a which_o if_o we_o shall_v apply_v in_o the_o plain_a and_o literal_a sense_n will_v prove_v strange_a monstrous_a lie_n and_o contradiction_n which_o god_n forbid_v any_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o blasphemous_a as_o to_o impose_v on_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o wisdom_n rule_n 4_o four_o examine_v diligent_o what_o agreement_n every_o text_n of_o scripture_n have_v with_o other_o and_o receive_v not_o easy_o and_o slight_o the_o seem_a sense_n of_o any_o text_n without_o compare_v the_o same_o with_o its_o parallel_a text_n for_o many_o thing_n seem_v to_o be_v positive_o assert_v in_o some_o place_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o yet_o be_v direct_o contradict_v in_o other_o one_o place_z therefore_o be_v so_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o and_o interpret_v by_o another_o that_o the_o one_o do_v not_o obscure_a or_o any_o way_n cloud_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o other_o rule_n 5_o five_o examine_v whether_o that_o which_o we_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o or_o that_o scripture_n be_v agreeable_a to_o those_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n in_o faith_n we_o must_v 2.13_o 2_o tim._n 2.13_o hold_v fast_o that_o model_n of_o faith_n once_o give_v to_o the_o saint_n 3._o judas_n v._n 3._o for_o which_o we_o must_v contend_v and_o consequent_o receive_v no_o private_a sense_n or_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o 1.20_o 2_o pet._n 1.20_o remember_v that_o no_o scripture_n be_v of_o any_o private_a interpretation_n but_o that_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n themselves_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n 14.32_o 1_o cor._n 14.32_o rule_n 6_o six_o examine_v what_o we_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o word_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o that_o law_n write_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n in_o two_o table_n of_o stone_n as_o a_o last_a square_n according_a to_o which_o to_o regulate_v all_o our_o action_n and_o consequent_o all_o our_o conception_n and_o opinion_n from_o whence_o our_o action_n flow_v the_o rule_n of_o obedience_n or_o that_o all_o perfect_a rule_n of_o charity_n 13.10_o rom._n 13.10_o which_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n be_v a_o infallible_a rule_n of_o trial_n of_o the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o hereby_o say_v the_o apostle_n we_o be_v sure_o we_o know_v god_n if_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n he_o that_o say_v i_o know_v god_n and_o keep_v not_o his_o commandment_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o he_o 2.34_o 1_o joh._n 2.34_o 1_o joh._n 2.34_o it_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n if_o it_o oppose_v or_o deny_v or_o any_o way_n impede_fw-la and_o hinder_v our_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o say_v the_o same_o apostle_n again_o 3.24_o 1_o joh._n 3.24_o he_o that_o keep_v his_o commandment_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o he_o and_o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o he_o abide_v in_o we_o even_o by_o that_o spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o even_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n so_o that_o even_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o both_o to_o have_v the_o spirit_n abide_v in_o we_o and_o the_o way_n to_o know_v we_o have_v he_o also_o and_o not_o a_o false_a counterfeit_a lie_a spirit_n be_v if_o thereby_o we_o be_v move_v and_o enable_v to_o keep_v god_n commandment_n this_o be_v the_o very_a rule_n our_o saviour_n himself_o prescribe_v to_o examine_v his_o own_o doctrine_n thereby_o 7.17_o joh._n 7.17_o joh._n 7.17_o if_o any_o man_n will_v do_v his_o will_n he_o shall_v know_v of_o the_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n or_o whether_o i_o speak_v of_o myself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o general_a rule_n of_o trial_n of_o the_o spirit_n even_o the_o word_n of_o god_n rule_n 2_o a_o second_o rule_n according_a to_o which_o to_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o be_v by_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v the_o rule_n our_o lord_n himself_o have_v give_v we_o to_o know_v they_o by_o mat._n 7.15_o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n which_o come_v to_o you_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n 7.15_o mat._n 7.15_o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n for_o many_o such_o be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n who_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o exterior_a dress_n and_o outward_a appearance_n so_o plausible_a be_v their_o pretence_n so_o spiritual_a be_v their_o expresion_n so_o much_o of_o the_o language_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o scripture_n phrase_n flow_v from_o they_o that_o you_o will_v take_v they_o for_o the_o true_a sheep_n of_o christ_n and_o undoubted_o to_o belong_v to_o his_o fold_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o inward_o real_o and_o true_o they_o be_v wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n limb_n of_o satan_n deceive_v and_o devour_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o simple_a but_o by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o which_o be_v confirm_v by_o a_o apt_a similitude_n vers_fw-la 16._o do_v man_n gather_v grape_n of_o thorn_n or_o fig_n of_o thistle_n q._n d._n 7.16_o mat._n 7.16_o no_o man_n can_v be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o expect_v this_o but_o every_o tree_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v bad_a bring_v forth_o fruit_n suitable_a to_o its_o good_a or_o bad_a nature_n so_o every_o good_a tree_n bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n and_o a_o corrupt_a tree_n bring_v forth_o evil_a fruit_n 17._o 17._o nor_o be_v it_o possible_a it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o a_o good_a tree_n can_v bring_v forth_o bad_a fruit_n neither_o can_v a_o corrupt_a tree_n bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n 18._o 18._o even_o so_o false_a prophet_n can_v bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o good_a true_a wholesome_a sound_a doctrine_n and_o religious_a manner_n so_o menander_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o man_n be_v good_a in_o himself_o produce_v evil_a action_n on_o the_o other_o side_n say_v antoninus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n he_o that_o will_v not_o have_v a_o wicked_a man_n to_o commit_v wickedness_n be_v like_a unto_o he_o that_o will_v not_o have_v a_o figtree_n to_o bring_v forth_o fig_n it_o be_v then_o a_o infallible_a trial_n of_o the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o by_o the_o fruit_n they_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n viz._n which_o be_v of_o god_n be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n 5.22,23_o gal._n 5.22,23_o the_o first_o of_o these_o fruit_n and_o the_o fair_a too_o even_o of_o large_a extent_n and_o most_o last_a which_o this_o tree_n of_o life_n bring_v forth_o be_v love_n even_o the_o love_n of_o god_n above_o all_o and_o of_o our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o this_o therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o infallible_a touchstone_n to_o try_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v the_o very_a spirit_n of_o love_n and_o that_o first_o in_o respect_n of_o himself_o be_v that_o essential_a love_n and_o love-knot_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o second_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o be_v that_o sacred_a vinculum_fw-la that_o invisible_a chain_n which_o unite_v we_o unto_o god_n by_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n 6._o gal._n 5_o 6._o and_o which_o unite_v one_o to_o another_o by_o charity_n peace_n amity_n the_o inseparable_a fruit_n of_o
a_o true_a faith_n so_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v vinculum_fw-la unitatis_fw-la both_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o person_n and_o office_n and_o that_o 3_o way_n first_o he_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n betwixt_o god_n and_o god_n second_o betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n and_o three_o betwixt_o man_n and_o man_n therefore_o call_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n eph._n 4.3_o the_o devil_n on_o the_o other_o side_n 4.3_o ephes_n 4.3_o be_v of_o a_o quite_o contrary_a nature_n as_o be_v the_o author_n fautor_n and_o fomentor_n of_o all_o division_n he_o divide_v and_o separate_v man_n from_o god_n by_o sinfulness_n and_o error_n and_o man_n from_o man_n by_o envy_n malice_n hatred_n strife_n and_o variance_n therefore_o be_v he_o so_o well_o know_v among_o the_o vulgar_a by_o his_o cleave_a foot_n the_o emblem_n of_o division_n now_o our_o love_n to_o god_n above_o all_o be_v manifest_v and_o express_v by_o our_o love_n to_o our_o neighbour_n 4.20_o 1_o joh._n 4.20_o 1_o joh._n 4.20_o if_o any_o man_n say_v i_o love_v god_n and_o hate_v his_o brother_n he_o be_v a_o liar_n for_o he_o that_o love_v not_o his_o brother_n who_o he_o have_v see_v how_o can_v he_o love_v god_n who_o he_o have_v not_o see_v 14.23,24_o joh_n 14.23,24_o for_o if_o any_o man_n love_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n he_o will_v keep_v my_o word_n and_o my_o father_n will_v love_v he_o and_o we_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o make_v our_o abode_n with_o he_o and_o he_o that_o love_v i_o not_o keep_v not_o my_o word_n and_o the_o word_n which_o you_o hear_v be_v not_o i_o but_o the_o father_n which_o send_v i_o and_o what_o be_v the_o word_n he_o mean_v and_o so_o often_o particular_o command_v but_o to_o love_v one_o another_o this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o joh._n 15.12_o and_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n he_o give_v we_o in_o charge_n to_o bring_v forth_o vers_fw-la 16_o 17._o even_o to_o love_v one_o another_o so_o that_o then_o where_o there_o be_v malice_n hatred_n strife_n variance_n bitter_a envy_n rail_n revile_n etc._n etc._n for_o such_o kind_n of_o person_n to_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n be_v a_o piece_n of_o impudent_a vanity_n and_o a_o false_a suggestion_n either_o from_o their_o own_o corrupt_a err_a spirit_n or_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n himself_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v a_o hater_n a_o reviler_n and_o the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n where_o there_o be_v peace_n 12.10_o rev._n 12.10_o love_n unity_n amity_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v unquestionable_a mark_n and_o token_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o unity_n therefore_o st._n john_n in_o the_o forecited_a place_n have_v tell_v we_o that_o hereby_o know_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n 4.6,7,8_o 1_o joh._n 4.6,7,8_o add_v immediate_o beloved_n let_v we_o love_v one_o another_o for_o love_n come_v of_o god_n and_o every_o one_o that_o love_v be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o know_v god_n and_o he_o that_o love_v not_o know_v not_o god_n for_o god_n be_v love_n it_o will_v be_v needless_a to_o instance_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o love_n be_v not_o only_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a of_o they_o even_o the_o mistress_n or_o rather_o the_o queen_n of_o grace_n and_o by_o the_o apostle_n extol_v above_o they_o all_o 1_o cor._n 13._o but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v the_o sum_n brief_a abridgement_n and_o epitome_n of_o all_o grace_n all_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v contain_v in_o and_o derive_v from_o this_o one_o as_o stream_n from_o the_o fountain_n head_n aug._n aug._n vnde_fw-la cetera_fw-la tanquam_fw-la ex_fw-la capite_fw-la exorta_fw-la &_o religata_fw-la contexuit_fw-la say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o they_o be_v reckon_v by_o the_o apostle_n they_o all_o arise_v from_o and_o be_v sum_v up_o in_o this_o one_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o bond_n of_o perfection_n col._n 3.14_o because_o say_v lyra_n loc._n sicut_fw-la virtutes_fw-la politicae_fw-la connectuntur_fw-la in_o pruden●…_n sic_fw-la insusae_fw-la in_o charitate_fw-la lyr._fw-la in_o loc._n as_o all_o philosophical_a virtue_n be_v bind_v up_o in_o that_o one_o of_o prudence_n so_o all_o infuse_a virtue_n or_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v bind_v up_o in_o this_o one_o of_o charity_n and_o therefore_o also_o be_v love_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n rom._n 13.10_o it_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n in_o three_o respect_n 1._o reductiuè_fw-fr in_o that_o the_o whole_a law_n be_v reducible_a to_o this_o one_o command_n of_o love_n and_o like_o homer_n iliad_n in_o a_o nutshell_n the_o whole_a volume_n of_o the_o law_n be_v contain_v in_o this_o short_a precept_n thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o 22.37,39,40_o mat._n 22.37,39,40_o 2._o formaliter_fw-la the_o very_a essential_a form_n of_o our_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v our_o love_n to_o god_n that_o be_v the_o very_a form_n life_n soul_n spirit_n of_o a_o true_o holy_a and_o acceptable_a obedience_n both_o in_o piety_n towards_o god_n and_o charity_n towards_o man_n when_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o love_n we_o owe_v to_o god_n himself_o and_o to_o our_o neighbour_n for_o god_n sake_n and_o therefore_o be_v love_n also_o style_v the_o end_n of_o the_o commandment_n 1_o tim._n 1.5_o for_o 1.5_o 1_o tim._n 1.5_o sinis_fw-la in_o moralibus_fw-la habet_fw-la rationem_fw-la formae_fw-la the_o end_n why_o we_o do_v this_o or_o that_o moral_a action_n be_v the_o very_a essential_a form_n of_o the_o action_n do_v 3._o effectiuè_fw-fr obedience_n be_v the_o effect_n the_o issue_n the_o product_n of_o our_o love_n to_o god_n flow_v from_o it_o as_o a_o effect_n from_o the_o cause_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v as_o before_o 14.23_o joh._n 14.23_o if_o you_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n love_v then_o be_v and_o needs_o must_v be_v a_o exact_a true_a and_o infallible_a touchstone_n or_o trial_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o spirit_n since_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a the_o fountain_n the_o abridgement_n of_o all_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o and_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n may_v every_o man_n try_v and_o examine_v himself_o whether_o he_o be_v adopt_v and_o reconcile_v unto_o god_n through_o christ_n or_o not_o for_o the_o spirit_n bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.16_o bear_v witness_n how_o but_o by_o the_o seal_n of_o sanctification_n upon_o our_o heart_n and_o this_o seal_n be_v love_n set_v i_o as_o a_o seal_n upon_o thy_o heart_n for_o love_n be_v strong_a as_o death_n cant._n 8.6_o whosoever_o find_v his_o self_n enrich_v with_o this_o precious_a jewel_n the_o love_n of_o god_n above_o all_o and_o of_o his_o neighbour_n as_o himself_o may_v thence_o assure_v himself_o of_o his_o regeneration_n and_o adoption_n that_o he_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o love_n be_v of_o god_n and_o every_o one_o that_o love_v be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o know_v god_n and_o he_o that_o love_v not_o know_v not_o god_n for_o god_n be_v love_n 1_o joh._n 4.7,8_o and_o this_o love_n betwixt_o god_n and_o every_o true_a faithful_a soul_n be_v mutual_a no_o man_n can_v love_v god_n but_o he_o that_o be_v belove_v of_o god_n for_o our_o love_n to_o god_n be_v but_o the_o reflection_n of_o god_n love_n upon_o our_o heart_n whereby_o our_o desire_n be_v inflame_v towards_o he_o and_o our_o endeavour_n quicken_v to_o serve_v he_o in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n 107._o bern._n cp_n 107._o quis_fw-la iustùs_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la dilectus_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la deum_fw-la redamat_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la dei_fw-la efficit_fw-la who_o be_v or_o can_v be_v a_o righteous_a man_n but_o only_o he_o who_o be_v belove_v of_o god_n love_v god_n again_o and_o express_v this_o love_n of_o his_o heart_n by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o his_o life_n which_o love_n and_o obedience_n the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o we_o a_o three_o rule_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 2.2_o act._n 2.2_o which_o be_v observable_a in_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o descension_n upon_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n record_v act._n 2.2_o and_o sudden_o there_o come_v a_o sound_n from_o heaven_n as_o of_o a_o mighty_a rush_a wind_n and_o it_o fill_v all_o the_o house_n where_o they_o be_v sit_v this_o heavenly_a wind_n or_o breath_n of_o the_o almighty_a wherewith_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v fill_v be_v express_v here_o to_o have_v
four_o property_n 1._o it_o be_v sudden_a 2._o vehement_a 3._o from_o heaven_n 4._o it_o fill_v the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v sit_v all_o these_o be_v the_o property_n of_o god_n spirit_n who_o motion_n and_o inspiration_n be_v first_o sudden_a and_o unexpected_a neither_o admit_v of_o any_o delay_n nor_o putoffs_a ambr._n ambr._n for_o nescit_fw-la tarda_fw-la molimina_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la gratia_fw-la second_o vehement_a for_o the_o conversion_n and_o quite_o turn_v over_o of_o the_o soul_n he_o blow_v upon_o 10.4_o 2_o cor._n 10.4_o cast_v down_o of_o strong_a hold_n the_o fortification_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n and_o bring_v into_o subjection_n every_o thought_n that_o exalt_v itself_o three_o from_o heaven_n as_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o dwell_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o to_o heaven-ward_n wing_n and_o raise_v the_o soul_n which_o he_o inspire_v four_o it_o fill_v the_o house_n where_o they_o be_v sit_v ever_o tend_v to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n 2.5_o 1_o pet._n 2.5_o which_o be_v the_o household_n of_o faith_n this_o heavenly_a wind_n never_o blow_v but_o for_o the_o good_a of_o god_n household_n therefore_o be_v his_o people_n call_v a_o spiritual_a house_n by_o the_o two_o first_o of_o these_o quality_n it_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o distinguish_v a_o false_a spirit_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n for_o as_o it_o be_v ordinary_a and_o common_a to_o every_o wind_n to_o be_v both_o sudden_a and_o vehement_a so_o it_o be_v common_a to_o every_o spirit_n also_o both_o true_a and_o false_a nay_o common_o false_a and_o feign_a spirit_n be_v more_o violent_a and_o vehement_a and_o make_v a_o great_a noise_n and_o stir_v in_o the_o world_n than_o the_o true_a spirit_n do_v and_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n for_o it_o for_o the_o false_a spirit_n want_v the_o native_a strength_n and_o genuine_a efficacy_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o support_v it_o fly_v therefore_o to_o force_n and_o violence_n earnest_a zeal_n and_o forwardness_n to_o bear_v up_o in_o the_o mind_n and_o good_a opinion_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o spirit_n then_o according_a to_o this_o rule_n we_o must_v look_v upon_o the_o two_o other_o property_n of_o this_o divine_a wind_n which_o be_v not_o ordinary_a and_o common_a and_o not_o natural_a to_o that_o wind_n which_o blow_v in_o the_o air_n first_o it_o come_v from_o heaven_n windes_n do_v not_o natural_o come_v from_o heaven_n but_o out_o of_o the_o cave_n and_o hollow_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o out_o of_o the_o middle_a region_n of_o the_o air_n neither_o do_v they_o blow_v desursum_fw-la downward_o as_o this_o wind_n do_v but_o lateral_o from_o one_o coast_n or_o climate_n to_o another_o but_o this_o wind_n come_v direct_o downward_o and_o de_fw-fr coelo_fw-la from_o heaven_n itself_o second_o it_o fill_v the_o house_n where_o they_o be_v sit_v and_o no_o house_n but_o that_o the_o wind_n natural_o blow_v upon_o all_o place_n alike_o within_o its_o circuit_n but_o this_o wind_n blow_v elective_o as_o it_o be_v and_o by_o discretion_n make_v choice_n of_o one_o place_n only_o to_o blow_v upon_o and_o no_o other_o so_o that_o in_o both_o these_o respect_v it_o be_v manifest_v it_o be_v a_o wind_n extraordinary_a and_o supernatural_a and_o by_o these_o two_o property_n we_o may_v try_v and_o examine_v both_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o own_o and_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o other_o if_o first_o those_o desire_n opinion_n and_o action_n which_o relate_v to_o religion_n be_v from_o above_o if_o the_o ground_n thereof_o be_v fetch_v de_fw-la coelo_fw-la from_o heaven_n so_o that_o they_o tend_v to_o make_v we_o heavenly_a mind_v to_o wean_v our_o heart_n from_o the_o world_n to_o elevate_v and_o raise_v up_o our_o affection_n to_o thing_n above_o to_o form_n and_o frame_v our_o conversation_n towards_o heaven_n 3.2_o col._n 3.2_o if_o second_o they_o keep_v we_o within_o the_o pale_a and_o limit_n of_o the_o church_n if_o they_o tend_v to_o the_o general_a benefit_n edification_n profit_n and_o good_a of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o the_o conversation_n of_o peace_n and_o love_n and_o unity_n among_o christian_n we_o may_v then_o be_v confident_a it_o be_v the_o heavenly_a wind_n the_o divine_a breath_n of_o the_o almighty_a the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n that_o inspire_v they_o but_o if_o otherwise_o these_o motion_n and_o opinion_n that_o seem_v religious_a be_v either_o first_o ground_v upon_o earthly_a and_o worldly_a respect_n have_v their_o private_a aim_n and_o intention_n either_o of_o ambition_n vainglory_n and_o popular_a applause_n as_o in_o some_o or_o of_o worldly_a profit_n benefit_n and_o preferment_n as_o in_o other_o or_o of_o hatred_n malice_n revenge_n as_o in_o a_o three_o sort_n of_o man_n or_o if_o second_o they_o tend_v to_o division_n schism_n separation_n debate_n variance_n malice_n hatred_n envy_n etc._n etc._n if_o either_o they_o smell_v rank_n of_o the_o world_n or_o taste_v of_o any_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n record_v gal._n 5.19_o now_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v manifest_a which_o be_v these_o adultery_n fornication_n etc._n etc._n then_o this_o wind_n come_v sure_o not_o from_o heaven_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o what_o be_v either_o natural_a or_o worse_o suggest_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n it_o be_v either_o a_o revelation_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o cave_n and_o hollow_n of_o a_o earthly_a mind_n or_o else_o it_o be_v inspire_v and_o blow_v from_o those_o region_n of_o the_o air_n which_o be_v the_o habitation_n of_o unclean_a spirit_n it_o be_v not_o defluxus_fw-la coeli_fw-la a_o divine_a breath_n inspire_v from_o heaven_n but_o either_o exhalatio_fw-la terrae_fw-la a_o terrene_a exhalation_n draw_v from_o the_o hollow_n of_o a_o corrupt_a heart_n or_o a_o blast_n from_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o air_n a_o suggestion_n of_o satan_n and_o by_o this_o rule_n also_o every_o man_n may_v try_v himself_o whether_o he_o be_v true_o sanctify_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o not_o he_o that_o shall_v find_v his_o soul_n possess_v with_o motion_n and_o desire_n wean_v from_o all_o the_o pomp_n and_o vanity_n profit_n pleasure_n and_o care_n of_o the_o world_n hunger_a and_o thirst_v and_o breathe_v after_o heaven_n who_o soul_n dwell_v more_o in_o heaven_n then_o on_o earth_n who_o affection_n be_v set_v on_o thing_n above_o and_o not_o on_o thing_n below_o may_v be_v well_o assure_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o he_o for_o all_o such_o motion_n and_o desire_n be_v but_o spark_n of_o that_o heavenly_a fire_n the_o flame_n whereof_o be_v mindful_a of_o its_o own_o original_n ever_o mount_v the_o soul_n aloft_o work_v towards_o its_o own_o centre_n and_o tend_v to_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v to_o denote_v which_o ascend_v quality_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n be_v one_o reason_n more_o why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v represent_v by_o fire_n mat._n 3.11_o because_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o fire_n both_o flame_n and_o smoke_n to_o mount_v upward_o so_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o every_o heavenly_a inspire_a soul_n to_o ascend_v both_o in_o contemplation_n and_o desire_n neither_o the_o more_o pure_a nor_o yet_o the_o more_o drossy_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n cleave_v unto_o the_o dust_n and_o continual_o dwell_v below_o that_o be_v endue_v with_o power_n from_o above_o or_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n among_o other_o also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v represent_v by_o water_n joh._n 7.38,39_o because_o as_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o water_n even_o against_o its_o own_o nature_n to_o ascend_v as_o high_a as_o be_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o it_o descend_v so_o even_o against_o the_o stream_n of_o natural_a corruption_n the_o soul_n be_v mount_v to_o heaven_n by_o the_o influence_n of_o god_n spirit_n who_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o the_o wing_n which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v for_o this_o ascension_n and_o flight_n be_v devout_a and_o fervent_a prayer_n divine_a and_o celestial_a meditation_n and_o desire_n chap._n x._o of_o the_o mean_n to_o obtain_v the_o true_a spirit_n of_o god_n general_n 4_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n which_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n the_o emblem_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o love_n descend_v upon_o christ_n our_o lord_n 3.16_o mat._n 3.16_o and_o which_o afterward_o both_o visible_o and_o public_o also_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n 2._o act._n 2._o and_o fill_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n extraordinary_o and_o miraculous_o with_o his_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o grace_n do_v daily_o descend_v still_o upon_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n though_o not_o in_o such_o a_o plentiful_a measure_n nor_o yet_o after_o such_o a_o visible_a miraculous_a manner_n
negligent_a and_o delinquent_a and_o for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n to_o the_o proficient_a that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n lyra._n gloss_n lyra._n he_o who_o be_v ordain_v to_o divine_a office_n as_o timothy_n be_v may_v be_v to_o that_o end_n perfect_v and_o thorough_o furnish_v to_o every_o good_a work_n 2_o tim._n 3.16_o and_o of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o verse_n before_o it_o be_v say_v they_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n viz._n be_v spiritual_o understand_v say_v the_o inter._n gloss_n that_o they_o be_v the_o mean_n both_o of_o our_o illumination_n and_o sanctification_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v clear_a from_o the_o prayer_n of_o our_o lord_n joh._n 17.17_o 17.17_o joh._n 17.17_o sanctify_v they_o with_o thy_o truth_n thy_o word_n be_v truth_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n for_o our_o illumination_n and_o the_o word_n of_o grace_n for_o our_o sanctification_n and_o this_o prayer_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v grant_v say_v lyra_n in_o behalf_n of_o his_o apostle_n when_o the_o holy_a spirit_n descend_v on_o they_o at_o the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n regeneration_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o sanctification_n and_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o this_o respect_n or_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o new_a birth_n jam._n 1.18_o of_o his_o own_o will_n beget_v he_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n 1.18_o jam._n 1.18_o and_o joh._n 1.17_o the_o law_n be_v give_v by_o moses_n but_o grace_n and_o truth_n come_v by_o jesus_n christ_n 1.17_o joh._n 1.17_o now_o what_o else_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o at_o least_o whereunto_o do_v they_o tend_v but_o to_o the_o clear_a understanding_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n reveal_v by_o jesus_n christ_n which_o revelation_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o what_o else_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n but_o accumulative_a a_o obedience_n to_o this_o truth_n even_o a_o obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 1.24_o 1_o cor._n 1.24_o hence_o it_o be_v term_v the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o his_o gospel_n the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n 3.6_o rom._n 8.2_o 2_o cor._n 3.6_o rom._n 8.2_o 2_o cor._n 3.6_o so_o that_o the_o preach_n read_v hear_v or_o in_o a_o word_n the_o clear_n of_o this_o gospel_n unto_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o spirit_n thereinto_o a_o example_n whereof_o see_v act_n 18.44_o while_o peter_n yet_o speak_v these_o word_n 10.44_o act._n 10.44_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v on_o they_o all_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n 3._o the_o holy_a sacrament_n both_o baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v effectual_a mean_n also_o for_o the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n it_o be_v promise_v upon_o our_o baptism_n with_o repentance_n 2.38_o act._n 2.38_o act._n 2.38_o repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o be_v also_o verify_v from_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n our_o head_n upon_o who_o baptism_n in_o jordan_n the_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v in_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o light_v on_o he_o mat._n 3.16_o mat._n 3.16_o 3.16_o denote_v unto_o we_o that_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o baptism_n not_o only_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v remig._n remig._n but_o also_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v receive_v therefore_o be_v we_o say_v to_o be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o without_o that_o the_o heaven_n be_v shut_v against_o we_o there_o be_v no_o admission_n into_o the_o celestial_a kingdom_n 3.5_o joh._n 3.5_o joh._n 3.5_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n couple_n both_o sacrament_n together_o as_o the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o spirit_n 12.13_o 1_o cor._n 12.13_o 1_o cor._n 12.13_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v of_o one_o spirit_n where_o we_o have_v the_o spirit_n join_v with_o baptism_n and_o with_o the_o lord_n supper_n also_o for_o what_o else_o can_v be_v mean_v by_o drink_v of_o one_o spirit_n but_o a_o allusion_n to_o the_o eat_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n whereof_o himself_o testify_v joh._n 6.55,56_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o 6.55_o joh._n 6.55_o that_o be_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o my_o spirit_n or_o of_o my_o gift_n and_o grace_n for_o in_o such_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n we_o must_v needs_o understand_v the_o word_n except_o we_o admit_v they_o in_o the_o gross_a carnal_a and_o corporal_a sense_n of_o the_o romanist_n hence_o christ_n be_v term_v by_o the_o apostle_n a_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o a_o spiritual_a drink_n 1_o cor._n 10.3.4_o 10.3_o 1_o cor._n 10.3_o and_o they_o do_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o do_v all_o drink_n the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n for_o they_o drink_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a rock_n that_o follow_v they_o and_o that_o rock_n be_v christ_n a_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o and_o spiritual_a drink_n christ_n be_v to_o the_o israelite_n of_o old_a in_o those_o sacramental_a symbol_n of_o his_o presence_n with_o they_o the_o rock_n and_o the_o manna_n and_o the_o like_a but_o in_o a_o more_o full_a measure_n and_o clear_a manner_n he_o be_v to_o we_o in_o those_o consecrate_a element_n of_o his_o holy_a supper_n which_o be_v right_o administer_v and_o right_o receive_v be_v spiritual_a food_n indeed_o for_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o very_a spirit_n of_o christ_n therewithal_o that_o be_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o gift_n and_o grace_n but_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v then_o that_o these_o bless_a mean_n of_o grace_n these_o conveyance_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v so_o often_o ineffectual_a many_o man_n do_v daily_o pray_v often_o hear_v and_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v be_v engraft_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o baptism_n and_o many_o time_n receive_v the_o bless_a eucharist_n and_o yet_o little_a or_o no_o news_n do_v they_o hear_v of_o the_o spirit_n very_o little_a stir_n of_o the_o heart_n few_o good_a motion_n do_v they_o feel_v within_o they_o be_v never_o the_o better_a nor_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o enrich_v either_o with_o spiritual_a gift_n or_o grace_n for_o the_o use_n of_o these_o mean_n the_o cause_n whereof_o be_v the_o hardness_n of_o man_n heart_n which_o receive_v not_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o corruption_n of_o man_n nature_n which_o quench_v the_o sacred_a fire_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n before_o they_o be_v well_o enkindle_v in_o the_o soul_n the_o exorbitant_a and_o unruly_a lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o world_n which_o resist_v the_o good_a motion_n lusting_n and_o strive_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n intus_fw-la existens_fw-la prohibet_fw-la alienum_fw-la when_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n have_v overgrow_v the_o soul_n there_o be_v no_o room_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o take_v root_a there_o these_o two_o kind_n of_o fruit_n can_v grow_v both_o in_o one_o heart_n but_o the_o one_o will_v choke_v overgrow_v and_o destroy_v the_o other_o to_o this_o outward_a mean_n of_o grace_n then_o and_o of_o the_o spirit_n the_o inward_a qualification_n the_o infitting_a of_o the_o soul_n to_o receive_v the_o impression_n of_o the_o spirit_n must_v be_v add_v actus_fw-la activorum_fw-la in_o patiente_a disposito_fw-la as_o the_o patient_a be_v dispose_v and_o fit_v to_o be_v wrought_v upon_o according_o so_o be_v the_o power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o agent_n so_o that_o according_a as_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v more_o or_o less_o perspirable_a and_o pliable_a to_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o spirit_n according_o so_o be_v his_o working_n and_o inspiration_n upon_o the_o heart_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v compare_v in_o scripture_n to_o water_n 39_o joh._n 7.38_o 39_o and_o as_o the_o water_n be_v of_o a_o diffusive_a nature_n and_o know_v no_o bound_n but_o as_o it_o be_v limit_v by_o the_o channel_n or_o vessel_n that_o hold_v it_o so_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o himself_o of_o a_o spread_a quality_n and_o be_v only_o straighten_a by_o the_o
he_o foam_v again_o and_o bruise_v he_o hardly_o depart_v from_o he_o 2._o the_o lord_n prophet_n when_o abstract_v from_o the_o use_n of_o sense_n in_o their_o ecstasy_n be_v so_o far_o from_o lose_v the_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o understanding_n that_o the_o very_a end_n why_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o use_n of_o their_o sense_n for_o the_o time_n be_v that_o their_o understanding_n be_v more_o intense_a may_v more_o clear_o because_o more_o immediate_o receive_v the_o truth_n reveal_v but_o false_a prophet_n when_o entrance_v by_o the_o evil_a spirit_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o understanding_n as_o well_o as_o of_o their_o sense_n so_o that_o oftentimes_o themselves_o understand_v not_o their_o own_o prophecy_n and_o pretend_a revelation_n as_o chrys_n out_o of_o plato_n allege_v ibid._n ibid._n they_o say_v many_o thing_n and_o good_a but_o they_o know_v not_o themselves_o what_o they_o say_v and_o this_o be_v ordinary_a with_o most_o enthusiastic_o confuse_o to_o talk_n much_o of_o holy_a thing_n and_o to_o heap_v together_o scripture_n phrase_n so_o much_o without_o order_n and_o right_a application_n to_o the_o clear_n of_o any_o truth_n they_o will_v seem_v to_o affirm_v that_o as_o they_o themselves_o know_v not_o well_o what_o they_o say_v nor_o whereof_o they_o affirm_v so_o be_v it_o very_o unlikely_a that_o any_o man_n else_o shall_v right_o understand_v their_o meaning_n 3._o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v never_o any_o motion_n from_o the_o good_a spirit_n but_o what_o tend_v unto_o good_a and_o not_o to_o the_o least_o harm_n either_o of_o themselves_o or_o other_o but_o such_o as_o be_v entrarce_v by_o the_o evil_a spirit_n have_v motion_n to_o do_v harm_n and_o mischief_n both_o to_o themselves_o and_o to_o other_o also_o as_o saul_n will_v have_v kill_v david_n in_o his_o prophet-like_a trance_n 1_o sam._n 18.11_o and_o prisca_n and_o maximilla_n two_o heretical_a prophetess_n and_o great_a pretender_n to_o immediate_a revelation_n hang_v themselves_o in_o one_o of_o their_o counterfeit_a revelation_n ecstasy_n which_o will_v further_o appear_v in_o the_o 16._o chapter_n of_o this_o discourse_n 4._o all_o that_o be_v deliver_v unto_o or_o utter_v by_o the_o true_a prophet_n of_o god_n in_o any_o of_o their_o ecstasy_n be_v for_o the_o good_a and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n but_o all_o the_o revelation_n of_o false_a prophet_n be_v at_o the_o best_a unprofitable_a useless_a and_o vain_a if_o not_o destructive_a to_o the_o truth_n the_o lie_v error_n and_o deceit_n the_o blasphemy_n and_o devilish_a doctrine_n which_o these_o counterfeit_a ecstasy_n and_o revelation_n have_v bring_v forth_o be_v both_o manifold_a and_o notorious_o manifest_v also_o but_o that_o ever_o any_o save_a truth_n either_o not_o know_v before_o or_o not_o understand_v have_v in_o these_o last_o day_n be_v by_o immediate_a revelation_n discover_v can_v i_o believe_v by_o the_o great_a enthusiast_n of_o the_o age_n be_v make_v to_o appear_v 19_o chrys_n in_o mat._n c._n 7._o hom._n 19_o s._n chrysost_o give_v we_o two_o rule_n whereby_o to_o know_v true_a miracle_n and_o consequent_o true_a revelation_n also_o from_o such_o as_o be_v false_a and_o counterfeit_v 1._o if_o necessary_a as_o to_o the_o time_n and_o occasion_n of_o they_o 2._o if_o useful_a and_o profitable_a as_o to_o the_o issue_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o but_o if_o neither_o of_o these_o concur_v in_o a_o miracle_n or_o revelation_n they_o be_v false_a and_o illusive_a and_o to_o be_v ascribe_v rather_o to_o the_o cunning_a of_o satan_n then_o to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n 5._o the_o vision_n and_o prophesying_n of_o the_o lord_n prophet_n be_v at_o all_o time_n and_o altogether_o true_a have_v not_o the_o least_o mixture_n of_o error_n or_o falsehood_n therein_o but_o those_o of_o the_o false_a prophet_n be_v sometime_o true_a and_o sometime_o false_a and_o sometime_o neither_o true_a nor_o false_a but_o of_o such_o a_o dubious_a nature_n as_o to_o be_v seem_o true_a not_o only_o in_o several_a but_o even_o in_o contrary_a sense_n et_fw-la est_fw-la evidentis_fw-la judicii_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o from_o the_o true_a god_n wherein_o there_o be_v the_o least_o mixture_n of_o falsehood_n or_o of_o a_o lie_n in_o any_o particular_a et_fw-la in_o his_o qui_fw-la mentiuntur_fw-la haer._n iren._n proem_n advers._fw-la haer._n say_v irenaeus_n even_o in_o lie_v vanity_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n there_o be_v ever_o some_o truth_n intermix_a that_o under_o the_o covert_n thereof_o the_o falsehood_n and_o deceit_n may_v unperceivable_o pass_v and_o be_v entertain_v thus_o though_o the_o diabolical_a spirit_n appear_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o holy_a samuel_n and_o the_o ecstasy_n and_o entrancing_n of_o false_a prophet_n be_v like_a unto_o those_o of_o the_o lord_n prophet_n yet_o 1._o by_o their_o wild_a exotique_a gesture_n and_o vexatious_a agitation_n 2._o by_o their_o loss_n of_o the_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o understanding_n for_o the_o time_n 3._o by_o their_o harmful_a motion_n and_o mischievous_a incitement_n 4._o by_o the_o uselesnesse_n and_o unprofitableness_n of_o their_o revelation_n and_o 5._o though_o they_o may_v speak_v much_o truth_n yet_o by_o the_o least_o intermixture_n of_o falsehood_n and_o of_o a_o lie_n therewith_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o but_o to_o leave_v these_o extraordinary_a mean_n of_o divine_a revelation_n so_o long_o cease_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o late_a pretend_a unto_o but_o by_o impostor_n and_o seduce_a person_n which_o will_v appear_v yet_o further_o by_o consider_v in_o the_o next_o place_n the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o divine_a revelation_n before_o christ_n and_o their_o school_n of_o the_o prophet_n chap._n iu._n of_o the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o divine_a revelation_n before_o christ_n 1._o the_o ordinary_a mean_n whereby_o god_n reveal_v and_o make_v know_v his_o will_n unto_o his_o people_n be_v in_o the_o firster_n age_n the_o tradition_n or_o delivery_n of_o divine_a truth_n from_o patriarch_n to_o patriarch_n together_o with_o the_o catechetical_a instruction_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v and_o head_n of_o family_n in_o who_o the_o several_a office_n of_o king_n priest_n and_o prophet_n be_v pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la enstate_v these_o divine_a truth_n be_v not_o at_o the_o first_o commit_v to_o writing_n because_o the_o year_n of_o the_o first_o patriarch_n be_v so_o many_o 13._o hook_n eccl_n pol._n l._n 1._o ser_n 13._o that_o their_o memory_n may_v well_o serve_v they_o in_o stead_n of_o book_n the_o imperfection_n and_o defect_n whereof_o god_n merciful_o relieve_v by_o often_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o what_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v remember_v by_o they_o in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o observe_v how_o many_o time_n one_o thing_n have_v be_v iterate_v even_o to_o sundry_a of_o the_o best_a and_o wise_a among_o they_o and_o thus_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v govern_v and_o instruct_v by_o a_o traditionary_a and_o unwritten_a law_n from_o adam_n to_o moses_n 2._o when_o the_o life_n of_o man_n upon_o earth_n be_v shorten_v the_o write_a law_n of_o god_n as_o a_o sure_a and_o more_o durable_a mean_n of_o divine_a revelation_n be_v command_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o their_o action_n but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o that_o it_o be_v permit_v to_o each_o man_n to_o give_v his_o own_o sense_n and_o make_v his_o own_o interpretation_n of_o this_o divine_a law_n at_o will_n and_o pleasure_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v expound_v to_o they_o by_o the_o consecrate_a priest_n and_o lawful_o call_v prophet_n of_o god_n in_o all_o age_n neh._n 8.4,5_o etc._n etc._n mal._n 1.7_o luk._n 4.17_o act._n 8.30.37_o 3._o and_o this_o way_n of_o reveal_v the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o his_o holy_a law_n do_v differ_v much_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o and_o of_o the_o second_o temple_n for_o under_o the_o second_o temple_n prophesy_v by_o extraordinary_a revelation_n general_o cease_v and_o hereupon_o come_v in_o a_o multitude_n of_o other_o expositor_n scribe_n and_o pharisee_n wiseman_n and_o disputer_n 1_o cor._n 1.20_o to_o all_o who_o the_o people_n be_v command_v to_o give_v ear_n and_o to_o seek_v the_o law_n at_o their_o mouth_n mat._n 23.2,3_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n say_v our_o lord_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n whatsoever_o they_o say_v unto_o you_o observe_v and_o do_v it_o 4._o god_n ordinary_o reveal_v himself_o as_o by_o his_o word_n and_o the_o interpretation_n thereof_o so_o by_o his_o work_n in_o several_a instance_n of_o his_o providence_n and_o act_n of_o his_o service_n command_v e._n g._n the_o delivery_n of_o his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n be_v a_o revelation_n of_o christ_n
so_o complete_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o last_o and_o unchangeable_a testimony_n we_o shall_v receive_v from_o god_n who_o heavenly_a doctrine_n deliver_v unto_o we_o be_v therefore_o term_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o eternal_a gospel_n rev._n 14.6_o 8._o it_o be_v a_o opinion_n very_o much_o unworthy_a the_o wisdom_n power_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o great_a god_n of_o heaven_n that_o he_o shall_v send_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o reveal_v and_o make_v know_v his_o will_n unto_o his_o people_n himself_o express_v this_o to_o be_v the_o last_o time_n of_o his_o send_v also_o but_o last_o of_o all_o he_o send_v his_o son_n mat._n 21.37_o and_o yet_o that_o his_o revelation_n of_o himself_o shall_v be_v still_o defective_a and_o incomplete_a wherefore_o be_v christ_n term_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n 14.6_o quia_fw-la impossibile_fw-it erat_fw-la deum_fw-la sire_n deo_fw-la discere_fw-la ideo_fw-la per_fw-la verbum_fw-la suum_fw-la decet_fw-la homines_fw-la scire_fw-la deum_fw-la iren._n l._n 4._o c._n 10._o joh._n 1._o 1_o cor._n 1.24_o joh._n 14.6_o joh._n 1.5_o and_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n mal._n 4.2_o the_o storchouse_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n col._n 1.19_o the_o only_a mean_a of_o discover_v unto_o we_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n without_o who_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o know_v god_n for_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o joh._n 1.18_o wherefore_o be_v he_o term_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n but_o by_o these_o and_o many_o more_o expression_n beside_o these_o to_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o holy_a will_n be_v so_o full_o by_o christ_n reveal_v that_o here_o we_o must_v now_o fix_v and_o not_o expect_v any_o further_a revelation_n or_o new_a light_n to_o be_v discover_v he_o look_v beyond_o the_o moon_n that_o look_v for_o revelation_n beyond_o christ_n and_o what_o already_o stand_v upon_o record_n to_o be_v reveal_v by_o he_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o be_v curious_a after_o knowledge_n since_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n say_v tertul._n 8._o nobis_fw-la curiesitate_fw-la opus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la post_fw-la christum_fw-la jesum_fw-la nec_fw-la inquisitione_n post●…_n evangelium_fw-la cum_fw-la credimus_fw-la nil_fw-la desideramus_fw-la ultra_fw-la c●…edere_fw-la hoc_fw-la 〈◊〉_d ●…rius_fw-la credimus_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la quod_fw-la ultra_fw-la credere_fw-la d●…amus_fw-la tert._n de_fw-fr praes_fw-la advers._fw-la haer._n c._n 8._o nor_o be_v there_o need_v of_o further_a search_n after_o truth_n since_o we_o have_v find_v the_o gospel_n where_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n we_o desire_v not_o to_o believe_v any_o thing_n beyond_o this_o belief_n for_o this_o we_o believe_v first_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n that_o beyond_o this_o there_o be_v nothing_o aught_o to_o be_v believe_v 9_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n have_v the_o honour_n after_o he_o to_o receive_v by_o immediate_a revelation_n not_o any_o new_a gospel_n but_o the_o right_a understanding_n firm_a remembrance_n and_o powerful_a publication_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n all_o who_o epistle_n and_o writing_n be_v as_o so_o many_o commentary_n and_o illustration_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o prophet_n of_o old_a be_v of_o the_o law_n and_o as_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n complete_a the_o old_a so_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n complete_a the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v ever_o receive_v in_o all_o age_n by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o summary_n of_o divine_a revelation_n so_o irenaeus_n haer._n quod_fw-la prophetae_fw-la praeconi●z●verunt_fw-la perf●ci●…a_fw-la christus_fw-la apostoli_fw-la tradider●…_n à_fw-la quibus_fw-la ecc●…sia_fw-la accipiens_fw-la per_fw-la universum_fw-la mundum_fw-la sela_fw-la bene_fw-la custod●…ns_fw-la tradidi●_n filiis_fw-la i●en_fw-la l._n 5._o advers._fw-la haer._n what_o the_o prophet_n foretell_v christ_n have_v perfect_v and_o his_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v from_o who_o the_o church_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n disperse_v receive_v the_o same_o have_v deliver_v it_o to_o her_o son_n the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n all_o which_o must_v undoubted_o believe_v and_o profess_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o family_n we_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o head_n corner_n stone_n eph._n 2.20_o and_o here_o it_o can_v be_v either_o impertinent_a or_o unprofitable_a to_o observe_v in_o what_o respect_v sometime_o christ_n and_o sometime_o his_o apostle_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o foundation_n we_o be_v build_v upon_o 1._o christ_n be_v call_v the_o foundation_n 1_o cor._n 3.11_o primary_o as_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o reveal_v truth_n original_o they_o flow_v from_o he_o for_o no_o man_n have_v see_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n have_v reveal_v he_o 1.18_o joh._n 1.18_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n too_o secondary_o from_o and_o under_o christ_n as_o his_o steward_n 1_o cor._n 4.1_o ambassador_n 2_o cor._n 5.20_o workman_n together_o with_o but_o under_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 6.1_o 2._o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n as_o upon_o who_o doctrine_n and_o example_n life_n and_o death_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v settle_v and_o their_o salvation_n fix_v for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n in_o who_o there_o be_v salvation_n but_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n act._n 4.12_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n ministerial_o as_o they_o be_v the_o administrator_n of_o this_o faith_n and_o salvation_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n the_o prophet_n more_o obscure_o the_o apostle_n more_o clear_o deliver_v it_o unto_o we_o christ_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n 4._o clem._n rec._n l._n 4._o have_v his_o twelve_o apostle_n as_o the_o twelve_o month_n which_o complete_a and_o fill_v up_o the_o year_n christ_n be_v alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o end_n of_o all_o divine_a revelation_n the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o supplement_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v even_o the_o corner_n stone_n in_o who_o both_o law_n and_o gospel_n prophet_n and_o apostle_n meet_v or_o the_o centre_n in_o who_o they_o be_v conjoin_v and_o in_o this_o centre_n we_o must_v fix_v our_o faith_n have_v find_v christ_n 14.6_o joh._n 14.6_o as_o by_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n he_o have_v reveal_v himself_o unto_o we_o we_o must_v seek_v no_o further_o he_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n let_v we_o not_o seek_v any_o new_a way_n or_o new_a truth_n lest_o be_v mislead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n we_o wander_v in_o the_o byway_n of_o death_n and_o ruin_n veland_n tert._n the_o virg_n veland_n the_o canon_n or_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n say_v tertullian_n be_v one_o alone_o immovable_a and_o not_o possible_a to_o be_v better_o frame_v anew_o and_o what_o rule_n this_o be_v he_o show_v by_o rehearse_v the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 3_o iren._n advers._fw-la haeres_fw-la l._n 1_o 2._o &_o 3_o and_o irenaeus_n before_o his_o time_n the_o church_n though_o scatter_a through_o the_o whole_a world_n unto_o the_o uttermost_a border_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o disciple_n what_o to_o believe_v the_o part_n of_o which_o belief_n he_o also_o write_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n with_o tertullian_n and_o thereupon_o infer_v this_o faith_n the_o church_n spread_v far_o and_o wide_a preserve_v as_o if_o one_o house_n do_v contain_v they_o these_o thing_n it_o equal_o embrace_v as_o though_o it_o have_v one_o common_a soul_n one_o heart_n and_o no_o more_o it_o publish_v teach_v and_o deliver_v these_o thing_n with_o uniform_a consent_n as_o if_o god_n have_v give_v it_o but_o one_o only_a tongue_n wherewith_o to_o speak_v he_o which_o among_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n be_v best_a able_a to_o speak_v utter_v no_o more_o than_o this_o and_o less_o than_o this_o the_o most_o simple_a do_v not_o utter_v i._n e._n when_o they_o make_v profession_n of_o their_o faith_n secund_a similiter_fw-la n._n fides_fw-la nostra_fw-la revelationi_fw-la apostolis_n &_o prophetis_fw-la factae_fw-la qui_fw-la canenicos_fw-la libros_fw-la scripserunt_fw-la non_fw-la a●…_n revelationi_fw-la si_fw-la qua_fw-la suis_fw-la aliis_fw-la doctoribus_fw-la factae_fw-la aquin._n 1_o p._n sum_n q._n 2._o art_n 8._o add_v secund_a and_o to_o conclude_v this_o second_o general_n our_o faith_n say_v the_o schoolman_n depend_v and_o be_v ground_v upon_o that_o
argument_n objection_n 1_o the_o grand_a objection_n of_o all_o enthusiast_n against_o college_n and_o humane_a learning_n and_o all_o study_v for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n reveal_v will_n in_o his_o word_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o example_n of_o elisha_n call_v from_o the_o plough_n and_o amos_n who_o be_v a_o herdman_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v unlearned_a simple_a fisherman_n in_o the_o new_a for_o answer_v whereunto_o consider_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o call_n of_o these_o person_n be_v not_o only_o extraordinary_a but_o singular_a and_o unusual_a for_o usual_o all_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n both_o ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a be_v breed_v up_o in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o have_v be_v already_o intimate_v so_o that_o this_o be_v no_o warrant_n for_o any_o shepherd_n ploughman_n fisherman_n or_o other_o ordinary_a person_n whatsoever_o to_o hope_n or_o wait_v for_o the_o like_a call_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o elisha_n the_o ploughman_n and_o elisha_n the_o prophet_n betwixt_o peter_n a_o fisherman_n and_o st._n peter_n a_o apostle_n every_o extraordinary_a call_n from_o god_n be_v both_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n and_o accompany_v also_o with_o extraordinary_a gift_n to_o execute_v the_o duty_n of_o this_o call_n it_o be_v as_o easy_a with_o god_n when_o he_o please_v to_o make_v man_n learned_a as_o to_o find_v they_o so_o and_o to_o descend_v to_o particular_n 1._o elisha_n though_o he_o be_v at_o the_o first_o call_v from_o the_o plough_n yet_o be_v he_o so_o instruct_v by_o the_o prophet_n elijah_n and_o upon_o his_o prayer_n so_o extraordinary_o endue_v with_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n that_o he_o become_v master_n of_o one_o of_o the_o school_n of_o the_o prophet_n who_o college_n be_v so_o full_a that_o the_o student_n desire_v he_o to_o have_v it_o enlarge_v 2_o king_n 6.1_o and_o it_o be_v one_o of_o his_o own_o college_n no_o stranger_n or_o illiterate_a person_n that_o he_o send_v upon_o the_o lord_n message_n to_o anoint_v jehu_n king_n over_o israel_n 2_o king_n 9.1_o 2._o amos_n indeed_o profess_v of_o himself_o amos_n 7.14_o i_o be_v no_o prophet_n neither_o be_v i_o prophet_n son_n but_o i_o be_v a_o herdman_n and_o gatherer_n of_o sycomore_n fruit_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v vuto_fw-mi i_o go_v and_o prophesy_v to_o this_o people_n but_o then_o this_o be_v note_v withal_o as_o a_o thing_n singular_a and_o rare_a that_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o prophet_n who_o be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o a_o prophet_n nor_o breed_v up_o in_o their_o school_n whereby_o he_o may_v be_v enfitted_a for_o so_o great_a a_o call_n and_o undoubted_o the_o mouth_n of_o this_o prophet_n will_v soon_o have_v be_v stop_v and_o severe_a punishment_n inflict_v on_o he_o for_o presume_v to_o prophesy_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v he_o not_o by_o miracle_n or_o some_o infallible_a sign_n prove_v his_o calling_n to_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o divine_a and_o although_o no_o miracle_n be_v record_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o prophet_n extraordinary_a call_n yet_o of_o elisha_n who_o be_v call_v from_o the_o plough_n we_o read_v that_o he_o make_v iron_n to_o swim_v raise_v the_o dead_a revealed_z the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n be_v many_o mile_n distant_a and_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o speak_v diverse_a language_n heal_v all_o disease_n etc._n etc._n if_o therefore_o any_o of_o these_o person_n who_o pretend_v to_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o consequent_o to_o be_v extraordinary_o call_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n can_v confirm_v the_o same_o by_o any_o such_o miracle_n it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a great_a sin_n against_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n to_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v in_o they_o of_o a_o truth_n but_o since_o this_o they_o can_v do_v they_o speak_v not_o with_o tongue_n but_o against_o they_o rather_o they_o cure_v no_o disease_n but_o increase_v they_o the_o more_o those_o especial_o of_o melancholy_a frenzy_n etc._n etc._n you_o may_v know_v their_o disciple_n by_o their_o pale_a complexion_n lean_a cheek_n wild_a distort_a look_n in_o a_o word_n since_o they_o pretend_v to_o extraordinary_a matter_n and_o yet_o can_v by_o no_o extraordinaery_a mean_n or_o miracle_n confirm_v the_o same_o it_o be_v too_o evident_a that_o their_o pretend_a revelation_n be_v the_o delusion_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n and_o not_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 3._o for_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n though_o they_o be_v but_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a person_n when_o first_o call_v yet_o through_o the_o instruction_n of_o christ_n himself_o in_o person_n for_o three_o year_n together_o and_o the_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n they_o be_v afterward_o endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o learning_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a whereof_o the_o very_a appearance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v upon_o they_o may_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n 1._o in_o tongue_n enable_v they_o to_o understand_v and_o speak_v all_o language_n 2._o in_o cleave_a tongue_n indue_a they_o with_o it_o he_o be_v of_o rhetorical_a elocution_n and_o logical_a analyse_v to_o divide_v distinguish_v and_o resolve_v god_n word_n into_o its_o proper_a part_n and_o portion_n 3._o in_o fiery_a tongue_n that_o by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n both_o natural_a and_o moral_a they_o may_v illustrate_v clear_a and_o make_v manifest_a thing_n divine_a all_o which_o part_n of_o learning_n evident_o appear_v both_o in_o their_o sermon_n and_o epistle_n include_v in_o the_o sacred_a canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o those_o also_o that_o stand_v upon_o record_n in_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writing_n such_o person_n then_o as_o from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n pretend_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n will_v by_o immediate_a revelation_n must_v also_o be_v assure_v that_o they_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o learning_n by_o immediate_a inspiration_n also_o for_o learn_v and_o religion_n be_v two_o inseparable_a twin_n no_o rude_a and_o illiterrate_v ignoramo_n be_v capable_a while_o they_o so_o continue_v of_o the_o sublime_a and_o celestial_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n and_o undoubted_o it_o have_v be_v a_o very_a unfitting_a thing_n that_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n at_o first_o or_o any_o of_o his_o minister_n since_o shall_v be_v a_o ignorant_a and_o illiterate_a generation_n kin._n greg._n in_o 1_o kin._n since_o our_o redeemer_n himself_o as_o a_o father_n observe_v as_o he_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o eternal_a father_n be_v the_o master_n of_o all_o art_n and_o science_n he_o profess_v himself_o to_o have_v receive_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a isa_n 50.4_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v by_o any_o of_o his_o member_n much_o less_o of_o his_o minister_n and_o they_o to_o who_o learning_n be_v offensive_a wherewithal_o christ_n himself_o be_v enrich_v to_o they_o christ_n be_v become_v a_o stumble_a block_n and_o a_o stone_n of_o offence_n for_o christ_n can_v be_v against_o himself_o neither_o can_v any_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n either_o be_v against_o what_o be_v eminent_a in_o he_o or_o against_o those_o gift_n that_o be_v bestow_v by_o he_o he_o give_v the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o science_n and_o he_o both_o will_v own_v they_o and_o do_v require_v they_o for_o as_o under_o the_o law_n a_o lame_a and_o a_o blind_a sacrifice_n be_v hateful_a unto_o god_n so_o both_o under_o law_n and_o gospel_n he_o require_v that_o the_o priest_n and_o prophet_n which_o be_v the_o portion_n of_o his_o inheritance_n shall_v be_v sound_a and_o see_v person_n neither_o lame_a through_o negligence_n nor_o blind_a through_o ignorance_n 3.17_o mal._n 2.7_o 1_o tim._n 5.17_o 2_o tim._n 2.15_o 2_o tim._n 3.17_o but_o such_o who_o lip_n preserve_v knowledge_n and_o also_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n such_o who_o study_n to_o show_v themselves_o approve_v and_o be_v thorough_o furnish_v unto_o every_o good_a work_n objection_n 2_o but_o do_v not_o we_o hear_v many_o unlearned_a man_n preach_v the_o word_n expound_v scripture_n and_o the_o most_o difficult_a part_n of_o they_o even_o hard_a prophecy_n and_o the_o mystical_a revelation_n itself_o and_o this_o to_o the_o great_a like_n and_o almost_o admiration_n of_o the_o hearer_n do_v not_o we_o hear_v they_o dispute_v with_o their_o minister_n and_o write_v book_n against_o all_o that_o oppose_v they_o and_o shall_v we_o yet_o doubt_v of_o their_o inspiration_n and_o the_o uselesnesse_n of_o humane_a learning_n since_o these_o person_n can_v do_v all_o this_o without_o it_o answer_v it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o such_o like_a thing_n as_o these_o be_v perform_v by_o unlearned_a man_n and_o make_v a_o great_a noise_n in_o the_o world_n and_o bear_v
find_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n prov._n 2.4_o such_o desire_n and_o study_n for_o wisdom_n the_o holy_a ghost_n undoubted_o will_v never_o 1._o exemplify_v 2._o exhort_v unto_o 3._o enkindle_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v tend_v not_o to_o vexation_n and_o trouble_v but_o to_o satisfaction_n and_o accomplishment_n in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o they_o et_fw-la hoc_fw-la modo_fw-la priùs_fw-la invenire_fw-la oportet_fw-la ut_fw-la quaeras_fw-la deinde_fw-la quaerere_fw-la ut_fw-la pleniùs_fw-la invenias_fw-la this_o desire_n of_o knowledge_n must_v not_o be_v only_o earnest_a but_o also_o sincere_a free_a from_o partiality_n prejudices_fw-la and_o prepossession_n free_a from_o pride_n covetousness_n ambition_n emulation_n and_o all_o base_a carnal_a and_o worldly_a end_n and_o interest_n par_fw-fr pura_fw-la erit_fw-la intentio_fw-la si_fw-la in_o omni_fw-la actione_n aut_fw-la honorem_fw-la de●_n aut_fw-la utilitaten_fw-mi proximi_fw-la aut_fw-la bonam_fw-la conscien_fw-fr tiam_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la bern._n setm_fw-la par_fw-fr denote_v by_o the_o singleness_n of_o the_o eye_n mat._n 6.22_o which_o be_v general_o interpret_v to_o be_v purity_n of_o intention_n in_o all_o our_o study_n and_o endeavour_n which_o render_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o our_o action_n clear_a and_o successful_a 2._o this_o earnest_n and_o sincere_a desire_n of_o wisdom_n must_v be_v prosecute_v as_o with_o diligent_a study_n illuminata_fw-la mens_fw-la obcaecatur_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la nifi_n à_fw-la domino_fw-la illuminata_fw-la so_o with_o fervent_a prayer_n unto_o god_n for_o his_o daily_a blessing_n thereupon_o for_o the_o mind_n which_o be_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n see_v nothing_o of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n but_o as_o by_o god_n it_o be_v enlighten_v therein_o therefore_o to_o he_o we_o be_v command_v to_o apply_v ourselves_o for_o wisdom_n jam._n 1.5_o so_o the_o wise_a man_n obtain_v it_o wisd_v 7.7_o wherefore_o i_o pray_v and_o understanding_n be_v give_v i_o prayer_n be_v the_o key_n that_o open_v the_o cabinet_n of_o god_n secret_n aug._n meliùs_fw-la solvuntur_fw-la dubia_fw-la oratione_fw-la quàm_fw-la humana_fw-la inquisitione_n aug._n the_o bucket_n wherewithal_o we_o dive_v and_o draw_v forth_o the_o water_n of_o life_n out_o of_o the_o fountain_n of_o wisdom_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n say_v the_o father_n be_v more_o easy_o unfold_v by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o fervent_a prayer_n then_o by_o the_o force_n of_o humane_a study_n 3._o but_o all_o man_n prayer_n be_v not_o effectual_a to_o the_o obtain_n of_o true_a wisdom_n 5.16_o joh._n 9.21_o jam._n 5.16_o for_o god_n hear_v not_o sinner_n it_o be_v the_o fervent_a prayer_n of_o the_o righteous_a man_n that_o prevail_v with_o god_n in_o the_o three_o place_n therefore_o our_o prayer_n must_v be_v enliven_v by_o the_o piety_n and_o purity_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o life_n and_o herein_o these_o two_o divine_a qualification_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v most_o especial_o require_v innocence_n and_o obedience_n 1._o and_o first_o innocence_n or_o the_o purity_n and_o cleanness_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o reception_n of_o save_a knowledge_n for_o wickedness_n 4.11,12_o wisd_v 4.11,12_o say_v the_o wise_a man_n alter_v the_o understanding_n and_o deceit_n beguile_v the_o soul_n or_o the_o deceitful_a lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o world_n cozen_v the_o soul_n of_o its_o right_a understanding_n so_o it_o follow_v for_o the_o bewitch_a of_o naughtiness_n do_v obscure_a thing_n that_o be_v honest_a and_o the_o wander_a of_o concupiscence_n do_v undermine_v the_o simple_a mind_n for_o as_o in_o a_o renew_a and_o righteous_a soul_n all_o the_o faculty_n thereof_o move_v forward_o in_o their_o proper_a place_n and_o order_n the_o understanding_n first_o rule_v the_o will_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o these_o guide_v the_o inferior_a desire_n or_o lust_n of_o the_o sensitive_a soul_n and_o keep_v they_o within_o their_o due_a bound_n and_o limit_n so_o in_o a_o sinful_a soul_n the_o government_n be_v pervert_v and_o all_o move_v disorderly_a and_o backward_o 1._o the_o inferior_a lust_n of_o the_o sensitive_a soul_n or_o carnal_a concupiscence_n master_v the_o will_n and_o affection_n and_o 2._o these_o master_n the_o understanding_n and_o pervert_v the_o judgement_n so_o that_o to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o holy_a mystery_n a_o holy_a and_o renew_a soul_n be_v most_o necessary_o requisite_a bless_a be_v the_o pure_a in_o spirit_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n aug._n deus_fw-la est_fw-la purgatae_fw-la mentis_fw-la sapientia_fw-la aug._n mat._n 5.8_o for_o god_n say_v the_o father_n be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o purify_a mind_n 2._o obedience_n be_v that_o second_o specification_n of_o piety_n which_o render_v our_o soul_n capable_a of_o save_a knowledge_n meaning_n by_o obedience_n not_o that_o universal_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o include_v all_o the_o part_n of_o piety_n monac_n citius_n exauditur_fw-la una_fw-la oratio_fw-la obedient_a be_v quàm_fw-la decem_fw-la millia_fw-la come_v emptoris_fw-la aug._n hom._n 3._o ad_fw-la monac_n but_o that_o obediential_a meekness_n and_o humility_n of_o spirit_n which_o make_v we_o ready_a to_o receive_v the_o impression_n and_o willing_a to_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o superior_n and_o one_o prayer_n say_v the_o father_n of_o such_o a_o obedient_a person_n be_v soon_o hear_v then_o ten_o thousand_o of_o the_o scornful_a and_o such_o as_o be_v wise_a in_o their_o own_o conceit_n sure_o he_o scorn_v the_o scorner_n but_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o lowly_a emiss_a quanto_fw-la obedientiores_fw-la fucrimus_fw-la praepositis_fw-la &_o patribus_fw-la tanto_fw-la obediet_fw-la deus_fw-la orationibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la euseb_n emiss_a prov._n 3.34_o and_o eusebius_n emissenus_fw-la say_v by_o how_o much_o more_o we_o be_v obedient_a to_o our_o ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a governor_n and_o father_n who_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o we_o and_o watch_v for_o our_o soul_n by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o god_n will_v be_v obedient_a to_o our_o prayer_n and_o yield_v to_o our_o desire_n see_v for_o further_a proof_n hereof_o ps_n 25.9_o joh._n 7.17_o jam._n 4.6_o 1._o pet._n 5.5_o these_o divine_a qualification_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o holy_a truth_n have_v these_o ensue_a benefit_n 1._o hereby_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n appear_v more_o plain_a easy_a and_o intelligible_a to_o the_o soul_n for_o the_o wate_n of_o god_n be_v plain_a to_o the_o holy_a but_o stumble_a block_n to_o the_o wicked_a ecclus._n 39.24_o 2._o hereby_o the_o soul_n do_v real_o taste_v and_o be_v delight_v with_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n for_o say_v the_o father_n aug._n palato_fw-la non_fw-la sano_fw-la poena_fw-la est_fw-la panis_fw-la qui_fw-la sano_fw-la est_fw-la suavis_fw-la &_o oculis_fw-la aegris_fw-la odiosa_fw-la est_fw-la lux_fw-la quae_fw-la puris_fw-la est_fw-la amabilis_fw-la aug._n as_o bread_n be_v sweet_a to_o the_o sound_n and_o healthful_a palate_n which_o to_o the_o sickly_a and_o unsound_a be_v unsavoury_a and_o as_o light_n be_v pleasant_a to_o the_o clear_a eye_n but_o to_o the_o weak_a and_o sickly_a troublesome_a and_o offensive_a so_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o light_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n be_v to_o the_o pure_a and_o holy_a sweet_a savoury_a and_o pleasant_a to_o the_o pure_a all_o thing_n be_v pure_a but_o to_o the_o impure_a and_o unclean_a even_o holy_a thing_n themselves_o become_v unholy_a tit._n 11.15_o 3._o hereby_o god_n be_v invite_v and_o win_v to_o preserve_v and_o guide_v we_o in_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o to_o scatter_v and_o dispel_v all_o temptation_n and_o seduction_n to_o error_n and_o deceit_n ps_n 25.11.14_o 4._o hereby_o that_o doctrinal_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o literal_a understanding_n of_o his_o word_n in_o the_o use_n of_o outward_a mean_n obtain_v be_v make_v perfect_a and_o complete_v the_o former_a be_v but_o the_o body_n and_o carcase_n but_o this_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o save_a knowledge_n if_o you_o know_v these_o thing_n happy_a be_v you_o if_o you_o do_v they_o joh._n 13.17_o hereby_o the_o heart_n be_v prepare_v and_o the_o mind_n make_v capable_a of_o a_o great_a and_o more_o full_a light_n of_o true_a wisdom_n according_a to_o that_o promise_n of_o the_o lord_n habenti_fw-la dabitur_fw-la mat._n 25.29_o to_o he_o that_o have_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o he_o shall_v have_v more_o abundance_n to_o he_o that_o make_v a_o right_a use_n of_o his_o knowledge_n more_o shall_v be_v add_v therefore_o the_o path_n of_o the_o just_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o shine_a light_n which_o shine_v more_o and_o more_o to_o the_o perfect_a day_n prov._n 14.8_o chap._n fourteen_o the_o objection_n from_o the_o misdemeanour_n of_o the_o ministry_n consider_v the_o necessity_n of_o piety_n and_o integrity_n as_o to_o the_o sacred_a and_o save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n reveal_v will_n be_v thus_o apparent_a the_o want_n hereof_o in_o some_o person_n of_o the_o clergy_n have_v
bring_v even_o upon_o the_o sacred_a function_n itself_o that_o great_a contempt_n and_o reproach_n under_o which_o it_o now_o lie_v oppress_v there_o be_v nothing_o so_o frequent_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o people_n as_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o minister_n the_o perjury_n time-serving_a and_o waver_a inconstancy_n of_o some_o the_o faction_n and_o sedition_n of_o other_o the_o pride_n the_o covetousness_n the_o drunkenness_n of_o other_o 7._o etenim_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la doctiesse_n volumus_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o docti_fw-la &_o boai_fw-fr qualis_fw-la ommno_fw-la est_fw-la qut_fw-la recte_fw-la quidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la sed_fw-la multo_fw-la rectius_fw-la moribus_fw-la &_o vita_fw-la philoso_fw-la phantur_fw-la sabel_n orat_fw-la 7._o have_v make_v even_o the_o profession_n contemptible_a and_o our_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n ineffectual_a and_o vain_a fervent_a prayer_n and_o holy_a live_v be_v those_o spiritual_a engine_n whereby_o those_o holy_a truth_n deliver_v in_o sermon_n have_v their_o influence_n upon_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o the_o hearer_n and_o where_o a_o exemplary_a purity_n of_o life_n be_v want_v it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o god_n who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o purity_n deny_v his_o blessing_n upon_o our_o labour_n and_o turn_v our_o preach_n into_o foolishness_n and_o herein_o the_o enthusiast_n of_o the_o age_n have_v find_v so_o great_a a_o flaw_n in_o the_o ministry_n as_o that_o they_o absolute_o decry_v the_o call_n or_o if_o not_o so_o yet_o the_o best_a term_n they_o can_v afford_v the_o most_o upright_o and_o conscientious_a among_o we_o be_v false_a prophet_n and_o deceiver_n of_o the_o people_n but_o yet_o that_o the_o error_n of_o this_o opinion_n and_o sinfulness_n of_o the_o rail_a accusation_n though_o against_o some_o person_n they_o have_v too_o much_o of_o truth_n may_v appear_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o these_o follow_a consideration_n 1._o that_o it_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n that_o provoke_v god_n to_o give_v they_o ignorant_a and_o sinful_a shepherd_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v like_o people_n like_o priest_n say_v the_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v punish_v they_o for_o their_o way_n and_o reward_v they_o their_o do_n hos_n 4.9_o and_o again_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n be_v come_v the_o day_n of_o recompense_n be_v come_v israel_n shall_v know_v it_o the_o prophet_n be_v a_o fool_n the_o spiritual_a man_n be_v mad_a and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n for_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o iniquity_n and_o the_o great_a hatred_n hos_fw-la 9.7_o egypt_n non_fw-fr est_fw-fr à_fw-fr plebe_fw-la aut_fw-la vulgaribus_fw-la hominibus_fw-la arguendus_fw-la out_o accusandus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la licet_fw-la sit_fw-la inordinatus_fw-la quia_fw-la pro_fw-la meritis_fw-la subd●…_n rum_o disponitur_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la vita_fw-la dectorum_fw-la evar._n ep_v fratribus_fw-la egypt_n and_o therefore_o say_v evaristus_n a_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o soul_n be_v not_o to_o be_v revile_v by_o the_o people_n though_o be_v disorderly_a because_o god_n dispose_v of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o teacher_n according_a to_o the_o desert_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o hearer_n and_o so_o of_o prince_n as_o well_o as_o of_o priest_n wicked_a prince_n god_n give_v in_o his_o wrath_n hos_fw-la 13.11_o viz._n when_o he_o be_v angry_a with_o a_o people_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o even_o the_o error_n of_o the_o best_a king_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o subject_n as_o david_n sin_n in_o number_v the_o people_n be_v cause_v by_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n against_o israel_n 2_o sam._n 24.1_o for_o the_o king_n heart_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o turn_v it_o whither_o soever_o he_o will_v prov._n 21.1_o either_o for_o a_o blessing_n or_o curse_n upon_o their_o subject_n tertia_fw-la anacleti_n epist_n tertia_fw-la sic_fw-la pro_fw-la meritis_fw-la plebis_fw-la saepe_fw-la pastor_n depravantur_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ut_fw-la procliviùs_fw-la corruant_fw-la qui_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la it_o be_v even_o so_o with_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v deprave_v and_o diorder_o in_o their_o life_n because_o the_o people_n by_o their_o sin_n have_v deserve_v to_o have_v such_o leader_n who_o direction_n shall_v soon_o tend_v to_o the_o ruin_n then_o to_o the_o health_n of_o their_o soul_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o christian_a people_n rather_o to_o cover_v and_o veil_n then_o to_o disclose_v and_o publish_v the_o enormity_n of_o their_o pastor_n for_o they_o be_v their_o spiritual_a father_n 1_o cor._n 4.15_o and_o the_o nakedness_n of_o father_n must_v not_o be_v discover_v by_o the_o child_n that_o the_o curse_n of_o cham_n fall_v not_o upon_o they_o gen._n 9.22.25_o if_o the_o pastor_n neglect_v their_o duty_n towards_o god_n the_o people_n must_v not_o therefore_o neglect_v their_o duty_n to_o their_o pastor_n but_o wise_o distinguish_v betwixt_o their_o example_n and_o doctrine_n obey_v the_o truth_n they_o deliver_v but_o avoid_v the_o sinful_a practice_n they_o follow_v which_o be_v positive_o command_v by_o our_o lord_n mat._n 23.2,3_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n all_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o bid_v observe_v that_o observe_v and_o do_v but_o do_v not_o you_o after_o their_o work_n for_o they_o say_v and_o do_v not_o etiam_fw-la si_fw-la quisquam_fw-la traditor_fw-la subrepsisset_fw-la etc._n etc._n say_v aug._n though_o some_o traitor_n or_o wicked_a person_n creep_v into_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n 165._o aug._n epis_n 165._o it_o shall_v nothing_o hurt_v the_o church_n or_o innocent_a christian_n for_o who_o christ_n have_v provide_v say_v of_o evil_a prelate_n what_o they_o say_v do_v you_o 3._o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v obtain_v in_o the_o use_n of_o outward_a mean_n and_o the_o ministerial_a office_n thereupon_o confer_v upon_o such_o person_n as_o want_v the_o internal_a qualification_n of_o true_a piety_n which_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o example_n of_o balaam_n who_o love_v the_o wage_n of_o righteousness_n and_o yet_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n of_o judas_n who_o be_v send_v out_o by_o the_o lord_n himself_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o have_v a_o devil_n and_o nicholas_n choose_v by_o the_o apostle_n one_o of_o the_o deacon_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o nicholaitan_a heresy_n so_o much_o detest_v by_o god_n rev._n 2.6_o shall_v we_o therefore_o accuse_v and_o rail_v upon_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o balaam_n or_o disparage_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o judas_n or_o impute_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a deacon_n the_o error_n of_o nicholas_n or_o shall_v we_o not_o hear_v and_o obey_v the_o truth_n because_o it_o come_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o some_o wicked_a as_o well_o as_o good_a minister_n it_o be_v rather_o our_o duty_n to_o admire_v the_o wisdom_n and_o magnify_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n who_o to_o give_v the_o great_a testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o make_v it_o more_o illustrious_a and_o evident_a be_v please_v to_o deliver_v it_o unto_o we_o by_o his_o minister_n of_o both_o sort_n good_a and_o bad_a both_o by_o the_o holy_a and_o by_o the_o profane_a and_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n undoubted_o that_o work_v in_o and_o by_o all_o person_n that_o deliver_v the_o truth_n though_o not_o in_o all_o alike_o but_o in_o man_n of_o divers_a qualification_n after_o a_o different_a manner_n in_o good_a man_n as_o ingredient_n and_o incident_a in_o bad_a man_n as_o urgent_a and_o impellent_fw-fr by_o good_a man_n more_o frequent_o and_o effectual_o he_o work_v the_o conversion_n of_o his_o people_n and_o by_o bad_a man_n sometime_o also_o though_o more_o rare_o that_o the_o work_n of_o his_o grace_n may_v appear_v in_o all_o and_o the_o glory_n thereof_o may_v to_o he_o as_o the_o supreme_a cause_n and_o not_o to_o his_o instrument_n be_v ascribe_v 4._o that_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n be_v not_o limit_v to_o those_o that_o receive_v his_o grace_n be_v further_a clear_a mat._n 7.22,23_o many_o will_v say_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n lord_n lord_n have_v not_o we_o prephesy_v in_o thy_o name_n here_o be_v great_a gift_n bestow_v and_o that_o upon_o wicked_a and_o unsanctified_a person_n for_o it_o follow_v immediate_o then_o will_v i_o profess_v unto_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n so_o also_o 1_o cor._n 13.2_o though_o i_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n and_o understand_v all_o mystery_n and_o though_o i_o have_v all_o faith_n so_o as_o to_o remove_v mountain_n viz._n of_o seem_a impossibility_n and_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o from_o whence_o two_o thing_n be_v plain_o and_o clear_o observable_a 1._o that_o the_o understanding_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n or_o prophetical_a and_o
divine_a revelation_n many_o pious_a man_n have_v be_v delude_v by_o this_o wile_n of_o the_o devil_n 9_o tert._n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la c._n 9_o and_o have_v fall_v into_o gross_a error_n tertullian_n though_o he_o observe_v this_o and_o see_v how_o gross_o many_o of_o montanus_n sect_n be_v cheat_v into_o foul_a mistake_n and_o error_n upon_o fancy_a revelation_n yet_o notwithstanding_o so_o strong_o do_v the_o devil_n work_n upon_o the_o fancy_n by_o the_o force_n of_o this_o enchantment_n that_o he_o himself_o be_v deceive_v also_o and_o become_v a_o montanist_n be_v cozen_v hereunto_o especial_o by_o the_o pretend_a revelation_n of_o a_o holy_a sister_n who_o he_o much_o extol_v in_o his_o tract_n de_fw-fr animâ_fw-la who_o pretend_a vision_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o soul_n corporal_o exhibit_v to_o her_o view_n make_v he_o believe_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v corporeal_a and_o although_o for_o this_o opinion_n he_o be_v not_o condemn_v for_o heresy_n neither_o yet_o be_v guilty_a of_o those_o more_o gross_a and_o blasphemous_a opinion_n of_o the_o montanist_n which_o their_o fancy_a revelation_n bring_v forth_o yet_o because_o more_o zealous_o then_o discreet_o he_o maintain_v private_a revelation_n the_o church_n of_o that_o age_n see_v the_o many_o mischief_n that_o ensue_v upon_o that_o doctrine_n severe_o censure_v he_o for_o it_o which_o make_v he_o desert_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o set_v up_o a_o congregation_n of_o his_o own_o which_o be_v call_v from_o he_o tertullianists_n and_o be_v reckon_v by_o s._n aug._n among_o his_o catalogue_n of_o heretic_n a_o story_n not_o much_o unlike_o this_o of_o tertullian_n 11._o jos_n accost_n de_fw-fr temp_n noviss_v l._n 2._o c._n 11._o be_v remember_v by_o doctor_n casaubon_n out_o of_o acosta_n who_o record_v of_o a_o learned_a doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o a_o very_a great_a zealot_n who_o be_v cozen_v into_o strange_a and_o blasphemous_a opinion_n first_o by_o the_o pretend_a revelation_n of_o a_o ordinary_a woman_n the_o story_n be_v at_o large_a set_v down_o in_o english_a by_o the_o say_a doctor_n in_o his_o 3._o ch_n of_o enthusiasm_n with_o many_o other_o remarkable_a story_n of_o delude_a person_n under_o pretence_n of_o revelation_n those_o two_o great_a pretender_n to_o revelation_n prisca_n and_o priscilla_n montanus_n his_o minion_n be_v so_o long_o cozen_v with_o satanical_a illusion_n which_o they_o take_v for_o divine_a revelation_n that_o at_o the_o last_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v hang_v themselves_o that_o they_o may_v pass_v from_o the_o misery_n of_o this_o life_n to_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o other_o 16._o euseb_n eccl_n hist_o lib._n 5._o c._n 16._o and_o theodotus_n a_o montanist_n have_v a_o vision_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o believe_v the_o spirit_n of_o error_n he_o be_v lift_v up_o on_o high_a and_o thence_o let_v fall_v down_o to_o the_o earth_n again_o and_o so_o miserable_o end_v his_o life_n and_o many_o of_o montanus_n sect_n which_o be_v great_a pretender_n to_o revelation_n and_o have_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o communion_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n at_o several_a time_n end_v their_o life_n in_o a_o halter_n be_v thereinto_o incite_v by_o the_o devil_n that_o inspire_v they_o who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o their_o revelation_n there_o be_v another_o ancient_a sort_n of_o heretic_n in_o the_o church_n call_v messalian_o and_o from_o their_o assiduity_n in_o prayer_n more_o than_o ordinary_a they_o be_v also_o call_v euchites_n their_o tenant_n be_v that_o every_o one_o bring_v into_o the_o world_n with_o he_o a_o evil_a spirit_n wherewith_o they_o be_v possess_v until_o by_o earnest_a prayer_n the_o evil_a spirit_n be_v drive_v away_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n do_v take_v possession_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o after_o this_o they_o need_v no_o more_o no_o sacrament_n no_o sermon_n no_o scripture_n to_o make_v they_o perfect_a for_o they_o can_v see_v the_o holy_a trinity_n visible_o and_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o all_o by_o immediate_a revelation_n but_o by_o this_o pretence_n to_o perfection_n and_o dependence_n upon_o revelation_n most_o of_o they_o if_o not_o all_o prove_v to_o be_v real_o possess_v by_o the_o devil_n eccl_n theod._n hist_o eccl_n as_o be_v record_v by_o theodoret_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n i_o may_v stuff_n this_o chapter_n with_o multitude_n of_o holy_a person_n that_o have_v be_v cozen_v with_o illusive_a and_o lie_v revelation_n katherine_n a_o holy_a woman_n say_v it_o be_v reveal_v to_o she_o that_o the_o virgin_n mother_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v conderve_v in_o sin_n and_o bridget_n as_o holy_a as_o she_o picus_n joh._n franc_n picus_n pretend_v a_o revelation_n quite_o contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o other_o viz._n that_o the_o holy_a virgin_n be_v free_a from_o original_a sin_n venerable_a bede_n remember_v a_o vision_n say_v bellarm._n 7._o bell._n de_fw-fr purgat_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 7._o wherein_o it_o be_v show_v to_o a_o certain_a devout_a person_n that_o there_o be_v a_o four_o place_n beside_o heaven_n hell_n and_o purgatory_n not_o unlike_o the_o elysian_a field_n describe_v by_o the_o heathen_a poet_n wherein_o live_v those_o soul_n which_o suffer_v nothing_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o make_v fit_a for_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n and_o this_o say_v the_o cardinal_n be_v not_o improbable_a since_o like_a to_o this_o revelation_n dionysius_n cart._n and_o greg._n have_v many_o other_o but_o contrary_a hereunto_o say_v suarez_n another_o jesuit_n revelationes_fw-la bedae_fw-la &_o carthusiani_n etc._n etc._n the_o revelation_n of_o bede_n and_o carthusianus_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n 9_o suarez_n jes_n to_o 4._o in_o thom._n disp_n 46._o 4._o num._n 9_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o confession_n 10._o aug._n conf_n l._n 10._o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v merciful_o deliver_v from_o the_o curiosity_n of_o vision_n and_o miracle_n for_o it_o be_v both_o a_o sin_n and_o a_o judgement_n to_o be_v curious_a in_o affect_v and_o depend_v upon_o such_o extraordinary_a mean_n of_o divine_a revelation_n since_o the_o ordinary_a be_v not_o only_o sufficient_a but_o more_o certain_a and_o infallible_a which_o be_v affirm_v by_o s._n peter_n prefer_v the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o immediate_a revelation_n by_o voice_n from_o heaven_n 2_o pet._n 1.18,19_o and_o this_o voice_n which_o come_v from_o heaven_n we_o hear_v but_o we_o have_v a_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o pprophecy_n etc._n etc._n the_o meaning_n be_v that_o a_o immediate_a voice_n from_o heaven_n reveal_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o more_o sure_a and_o infallible_a way_n of_o reveal_v christ_n and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n but_o that_o voice_n from_o heaven_n vision_n and_o immediate_a revelation_n may_v be_v and_o often_o be_v counterfeit_v by_o the_o devil_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n right_o understand_v be_v a_o sure_a and_o infallible_a guide_n and_o a_o unerring_a rule_n of_o truth_n as_o be_v the_o dictate_v and_o inspiraration_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n himself_o chap._n xvi_o several_a text_n allege_v against_o humane_a learning_n and_o against_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o immediate_a bevelation_n explain_v 8.10,11,12_o jer._n 31.34_o heb._n 8.10,11,12_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n record_v jer._n 31.34_o and_o remember_v to_o be_v accomplish_v heb._n 8.10,11,12_o be_v the_o chief_a place_n allege_v against_o the_o necessity_n of_o learning_n or_o the_o teach_n of_o man_n as_o contain_v the_o promise_n of_o a_o immediate_a teach_n from_o god_n himself_o this_o be_v the_o covenant_n which_o i_o will_v make_v with_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n after_o those_o day_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n into_o their_o mind_n and_o write_v they_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o teach_v every_o man_n his_o neighbour_n and_o every_o man_n his_o brother_n say_v know_v the_o lord_n for_o all_o shall_v know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o to_o the_o great_a for_o i_o will_v be_v merciful_a to_o their_o unrighteousness_n and_o their_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n will_v i_o remember_v no_o more_o in_o which_o text_n consist_v of_o three_o verse_n there_o be_v a_o threefold_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o old_a covenant_n and_o the_o new_a deliver_v 1._o the_o old_a law_n be_v write_v in_o table_n of_o stone_n but_o the_o new_a in_o the_o fleshly_a table_n of_o man_n heart_n vers_fw-la 10._o i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n into_o their_o mind_n etc._n etc._n i._n e._n my_o law_n under_o the_o new_a covenant_n shall_v be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o mind_n and_o more_o approve_v themselves_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n to_o be_v the_o way_n of_o perfection_n and_o felicity_n and_o consequent_o shall_v have_v a_o strong_a
good_a instruction_n thence_o derive_v the_o one_o be_v as_o the_o body_n and_o the_o other_o the_o soul_n of_o religion_n and_o when_o these_o two_o meet_v together_o viz._n the_o unction_n without_o and_o the_o anoint_v within_o or_o when_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o people_n concur_v or_o when_o then_o the_o outward_a effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o word_n fall_v upon_o heart_n infuse_v and_o season_v with_o grace_n and_o obedience_n then_o be_v these_o several_a promise_n accomplish_v then_o be_v a_o people_n true_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o teach_v of_o god_n indeed_o or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o then_o be_v they_o the_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n the_o next_o memorable_a place_n misapply_v to_o patronize_v extraordinary_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n be_v that_o pprophecy_n of_o joel_n 2.28_o remember_v to_o be_v accomplish_v act._n 2.16_o etc._n etc._n etc._n jocl_n 2.28_o act._n 2.16_o etc._n etc._n it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o last_o day_n say_v god_n i_o will_v pour_v out_o of_o my_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n and_o your_o son_n and_o your_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v etc._n etc._n this_o text_n must_v be_v understand_v with_o several_a limitation_n otherwise_o many_o dangerous_a and_o false_a consequence_n will_v ensue_v and_o such_o as_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o in_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v affirm_v i_o will_v pour_v out_o of_o my_o spirit_n not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o my_o spirit_n himself_o for_o no_o flesh_n loc._n ad_fw-la dive_v sa_fw-fr dona_fw-la respicit_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la minutionem_fw-la substantiae_fw-la gloss_n ordin_fw-fr in_o loc._n not_o all_o flesh_n can_v contain_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o fill_v all_o the_o world_n and_o contain_v all_o thing_n wisd_v 1._o but_o of_o my_o spirit_n i._n e._n of_o his_o gift_n and_o grace_n even_o as_o beam_n from_o the_o light_n as_o heat_n from_o the_o fire_n or_o as_o stream_n from_o this_o fountain_n of_o truth_n 2._o i_o will_v pour_v out_o denote_v indeed_o the_o liberal_a donation_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n under_o the_o gospel_n but_o yet_o with_o restriction_n to_o certain_a time_n and_o certain_a person_n for_o not_o at_o all_o time_n neither_o upon_o all_o person_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n plentiful_o pour_v out_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n visible_o and_o miraculous_o descend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v a_o plentiful_a pour_v out_o so_o that_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n vers_fw-la 4._o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n to_o understand_v and_o open_v all_o mystery_n the_o gift_n of_o heal_v all_o disease_n the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n etc._n etc._n these_o and_o many_o other_o gift_n be_v at_o this_o time_n after_o such_o a_o plentiful_a manner_n pour_v forth_o that_o there_o be_v some_o relic_n some_o drop_n of_o this_o full_a measure_n remain_v in_o the_o church_n for_o 400_o year_n after_o thus_o it_o be_v then_o and_o it_o be_v then_o necessary_a because_o the_o first_o publication_n and_o plant_v of_o the_o gospel_n require_v extraordinary_a and_o more_o ample_a gift_n and_o ability_n for_o the_o effect_n thereof_o but_o we_o must_v not_o look_v to_o see_v those_o day_n of_o such_o extraordinary_a effusion_n to_o return_v again_o which_o be_v intimate_v in_o that_o they_o be_v call_v the_o last_o day_n in_o the_o text_n as_o be_v the_o last_o time_n we_o must_v expect_v any_o such_o miraculous_a and_o immediate_a effusion_n or_o revelation_n till_o the_o last_o day_n of_o all_o even_o that_o great_a and_o notable_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v vers_n 20._o although_o therefore_o this_o pprophecy_n may_v in_o some_o general_a respect_n be_v extend_v to_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n yet_o particular_o and_o after_o a_o especial_a manner_n it_o be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o by_o s._n peter_n it_o be_v here_o apply_v unto_o they_o vers_n 15_o 16._o and_o undoubted_o it_o be_v high_a presumption_n in_o any_o man_n or_o sect_n of_o man_n to_o apply_v to_o themselves_o what_o be_v peculiar_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o divine_o inspire_a apostle_n and_o their_o hope_n must_v needs_o be_v vain_a who_o wait_v for_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n upon_o misapply_v promise_n and_o prophecy_v long_o since_o accomplish_v upon_o all_o flesh_n which_o 1._o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o man_n promiscuous_o but_o of_o all_o such_o man_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o condition_n as_o give_v up_o their_o name_n to_o become_v my_o son_n and_o daughter_n to_o be_v call_v by_o and_o to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o so_o the_o pprophecy_n conclude_v whoseever_n shall_v call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o so_o s._n peter_n conclude_v his_o sermon_n upon_o this_o pprophecy_n repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v vers_fw-la 38._o not_o all_o flesh_n but_o such_o only_a as_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o this_o limitation_n cut_v off_o all_o turk_n jew_n infidel_n heretic_n and_o hypoerite_n for_o no_o such_o flesh_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n pour_v on_o they_o but_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o wickedness_n 2._o all_o flesh_n can_v be_v mean_v of_o all_o god_n people_n neither_o as_o to_o the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n and_o full_a understanding_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n for_o so_o all_o good_a christian_n man_n and_o woman_n whether_o be_v they_o young_a or_o old_a child_n or_o servant_n must_v turn_v prophet_n and_o all_o flesh_n as_o the_o reverend_a andrew_n must_v be_v cut_v out_o into_o tongue_n which_o be_v a_o monstrous_a thing_n to_o imagine_v for_o if_o all_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o tongue_n where_o be_v the_o ear_n etc._n etc._n if_o all_o be_v preacher_n where_o be_v the_o hearer_n such_o be_v not_o a_o orderly_a church_n but_o a_o babylon_n of_o confusion_n where_o the_o one_o hear_v not_o another_o therefore_o though_o it_o be_v say_v all_o flesh_n it_o be_v not_o say_v all_o your_o son_n and_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v but_o some_o shall_v do_v it_o for_o all_o some_o son_n and_o some_o servant_n too_o i._n e._n some_o jew_n and_o some_o gentile_n some_o of_o all_o nation_n god_n give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n and_o these_o must_v be_v of_o the_o male_a not_o of_o the_o female_a sex_n they_o be_v prohibit_v 1_o cor._n 14.34_o let_v your_o woman_n keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n if_o you_o demand_v how_o be_v the_o spirit_n then_o upon_o all_o flesh_n it_o be_v upon_o all_o holy_a and_o good_a christian_n but_o not_o upon_o all_o to_o prophesy_v all_o god_n people_n have_v in_o some_o measure_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o truth_n but_o that_o do_v not_o authorise_v they_o present_o to_o turn_v speaker_n and_o teacher_n of_o other_o but_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n say_v you_o may_v all_o prophesy_v one_o by_o one_o 14.31_o 1_o cor._n 14.31_o 1_o cor._n 14.31_o you_o all_o that_o be_v as_o many_o as_o be_v prophet_n but_o to_o think_v that_o all_o be_v so_o the_o apostle_n hold_v it_o very_o absurd_a demand_v with_o indignation_n be_v all_o apostle_n be_v all_o prophet_n 1_o cor._n 12.29_o not_o so_o sure_o the_o gift_n must_v first_o be_v have_v and_o then_o letter_n of_o administration_n take_v before_o the_o operation_n or_o work_n of_o prophecy_n be_v lawful_o perform_v it_o be_v further_o allege_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 1_o cor._n 12.7_o 12.7_o 1_o cor._n 12.7_o to_o every_o man_n be_v give_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o profit_v withal_o whence_o it_o be_v infer_v that_o both_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v for_o the_o profit_n of_o our_o brethren_n and_o immediate_a revelation_n or_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o that_o end_n be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n answer_v by_o every_o man_n be_v not_o mean_v every_o particular_a person_n but_o every_o man_n that_o have_v those_o gift_n mention_v in_o the_o next_o word_n viz._n the_o gift_n of_o wisdom_n knowledge_n faith_n tongue_n etc._n etc._n have_v they_o for_o this_o end_n give_v that_o he_o may_v profit_v and_o edify_v the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n thereby_o and_o they_o be_v call_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n 1._o because_o they_o flow_v from_o the_o spirit_n either_o extraordinary_o or_o immediate_o as_o in_o the_o firster_n and_o primitive_a time_n of_o the_o church_n or_o ordinary_o and_o in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n in_o all_o age_n since_o 2._o because_o by_o the_o help_n of_o these_o gift_n we_o be_v enable_v to_o manifest_v and_o clear_v the_o truth_n and_o true_a meaning_n of_o
the_o spirit_n in_o the_o word_n joh._n 1.9_o 1.9_o joh._n 1.9_o that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v urge_v that_o every_o man_n have_v a_o light_n within_o he_o display_v from_o christ_n the_o true_a light_n of_o the_o world_n whereunto_o if_o he_o give_v heed_n he_o shall_v not_o need_v any_o outward_a illumination_n or_o instruction_n from_o man_n for_o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n himself_n and_o himself_o have_v sufficient_o do_v it_o answer_v it_o be_v with_o all_o reverence_n and_o thankfulness_n acknowledge_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o every_o perfect_a illumination_n whether_o natural_a spiritual_a or_o eternal_a but_o yet_o the_o word_n be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o every_o man_n say_v the_o father_n aug._n non_fw-la quia_fw-la nullus_fw-la est_fw-la hominum_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la tlluminatur_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la insi_fw-fr ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la nullus_fw-la illuminatur_fw-la aug._n be_v true_o and_o full_o enlighten_v immediate_o by_o christ_n himself_o but_o that_o no_o man_n be_v enlighten_v but_o by_o he_o beda_n sicut_fw-la nemo_fw-la à_fw-la seipso_fw-la esse_fw-la sic_fw-la aemo_fw-la à_fw-la s●…pso_fw-la sapiens_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la beda_n for_o as_o no_o man_n can_v be_v so_o no_o man_n can_v be_v wise_a or_o holy_a from_o himself_o but_o from_o christ_n but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o effusion_n of_o the_o natural_a light_n of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v lux_fw-la lumen_fw-la and_o luminare_fw-la there_o be_v 1._o the_o light_n itself_o 2._o the_o medium_n that_o receive_v it_o 3._o the_o splendid_a body_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v display_v so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o spiritual_a light_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v 1._o lux_fw-la the_o true_a light_n itself_o and_o this_o be_v christ_n 2._o lumen_fw-la the_o medium_n whereby_o our_o soul_n be_v enlighten_v by_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v a_o lively_a faith_n such_o a_o faith_n as_o be_v both_o doctrinal_a and_o practical_a joh._n 12.46_o i_o be_o come_v a_o light_n into_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v on_o i_o shall_v not_o abide_v in_o darkness_n 3._o luminaria_fw-la the_o luminary_n or_o personal_a light_n by_o who_o ministry_n this_o light_n be_v impart_v and_o these_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o age_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n say_v you_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 5.14_o so_o that_o as_o every_o man_n be_v enlighten_v by_o christ_n primary_o and_o original_o so_o by_o his_o minister_n also_o secondary_o and_o instrumental_o they_o be_v the_o earthen_a vessel_n that_o carry_v this_o heavenly_a treasure_n the_o luminary_n that_o convey_v unto_o other_o that_o light_n of_o grace_n and_o truth_n which_o from_o christ_n they_o have_v receive_v even_o as_o the_o sun_n the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n be_v the_o conveyance_n of_o that_o material_a light_n which_o have_v its_o be_v before_o they_o and_o what_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v of_o the_o diffusion_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o heaven_n over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n psal_n 19.4_o be_v apply_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n rom._n 10.18_o their_o sound_n be_v go_v out_o into_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o word_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o for_o the_o more_o full_a understanding_n of_o this_o text_n it_o be_v worthy_a observation_n that_o the_o word_n may_v as_o well_o if_o not_o more_o proper_o be_v render_v thus_o in_o english_a he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n who_o come_v into_o the_o world_n light_v every_o man_n apply_v as_o grotius_n note_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o be_v most_o agreeable_a with_o the_o context_n for_o it_o immediate_o follow_v he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o as_o long_o as_o i_o be_o in_o the_o world_n i_o be_o the_o light_n thereof_o joh._n 9.5_o and_o this_o be_v christ_n principal_a errand_n into_o the_o world_n to_o give_v light_n to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n etc._n etc._n luk._n 1.79_o 1_o cor._n 14.30_o 14.30_o 1_o cor._n 14.30_o but_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v reveal_v to_o another_o that_o sit_v by_o let_v the_o first_o hold_v his_o peace_n whence_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o the_o people_n be_v capable_a of_o revelation_n from_o heaven_n and_o may_v thereupon_o interrupt_v and_o silence_v the_o preacher_n that_o their_o revelation_n may_v be_v hear_v answer_v it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o every_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v yield_v all_o obedience_n to_o a_o divine_a revelation_n and_o keep_v silence_n when_o god_n himself_o speak_v by_o the_o mediate_a ministry_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n but_o that_o no_o such_o immediate_a revelation_n can_v be_v mean_v in_o this_o text_n be_v clear_a from_o the_o context_n the_o word_n immediate_o before_o be_v these_o let_v the_o prophet_n speak_v two_o or_o three_o and_o let_v the_o other_o judge_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v if_o any_o thing_n be_v reveal_v not_o immediate_o from_o heaven_n sure_o for_o that_o be_v not_o liable_a to_o humane_a judgement_n but_o as_o it_o be_v vers_fw-la 26._o if_o any_o man_n have_v a_o revelation_n i._n e._n the_o gift_n of_o reveal_v or_o open_v some_o gospel_n truth_n which_o be_v hide_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o some_o type_n figure_n or_o mystical_a expression_n in_o the_o law_n for_o evangelium_fw-la est_fw-la velatum_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la &_o lex_fw-la est_fw-la revelat_fw-la a_o in_o evangelio_n i._n e._n the_o law_n be_v but_o the_o veil_a gospel_n and_o the_o gospel_n the_o reveal_v law_n and_o he_o have_v the_o gift_n or_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n not_o who_o bring_v in_o new_a revelation_n which_o under_o a_o dismal_a curse_n be_v forbid_v but_o who_o can_v reveal_v and_o open_v the_o old_a who_o can_v pull_v the_o veil_n off_o moses_n face_n who_o can_v open_v the_o law_n with_o the_o gospel_n key_n and_o find_v christ_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n under_o the_o type_n and_o dark_a expression_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v also_o mean_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n eph._n 1.17_o and_o may_v serve_v to_o clear_v that_o text_n also_o from_o the_o like_o false_a collection_n thence_o 1.17_o eph._n 1.17_o only_o we_o may_v again_o remember_v herewithal_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o both_o these_o and_o all_o other_o text_n allege_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o this_o gift_n of_o revelation_n be_v extraordinary_o and_o by_o more_o immediate_a inspiration_n communicate_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n which_o no_o enthusiast_n without_o sacrilege_n can_v now_o pretend_v unto_o no_o more_o than_o he_o may_v to_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n miracle_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o those_o primitive_a time_n be_v then_o necessary_a for_o that_o first_o plant_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o work_v of_o faith_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o hearer_n but_o be_v now_o and_o have_v long_a since_o cease_v as_o be_v no_o further_o useful_a since_o the_o gospel_n be_v plant_v and_o we_o all_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o same_o so_o that_o what_o the_o father_n say_v of_o miracle_n the_o same_o be_v true_a of_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n of_o wisdom_n revelation_n and_o all_o extraordinary_a and_o immediate_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o be_v necessary_a before_o the_o world_n believe_v even_o to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v but_o he_o that_o now_o look_v for_o such_o ground_n of_o his_o faith_n as_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a be_v himself_o a_o miracle_n because_o he_o believe_v not_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n of_o believer_n aug._n miracula_fw-la necessaria_fw-la fuere_fw-la priusquam_fw-la crederet_fw-la mundus_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la ut_fw-la mundus_fw-la crederet_fw-la quisquis_fw-la adhuc_fw-la prodigia_fw-la ut_fw-la credat_fw-la inquirit_fw-la magnum_fw-la est_fw-la ipse_fw-la prodigium_fw-la qui_fw-la mundo_fw-la credente_fw-la non_fw-la credit_n aug._n other_o text_n allege_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o immediate_a inspiration_n be_v such_o wherein_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n and_o our_o communion_n with_o they_o be_v express_v and_o rom._n 8.9_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o 8.9_o rom._n 8.9_o and_o 1_o joh._n 3.6_o whosoever_o abide_v in_o he_o sin_v not_o and_o vers_fw-la 24._o hereby_o know_v we_o that_o he_o abide_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o right_o to_o understand_v which_o text_n and_o the_o like_a expression_n in_o all_o other_o text_n and_o to_o free_v they_o
be_v understand_v more_o particular_o of_o the_o prophecy_n and_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o his_o crucifier_n and_o deliverance_n of_o his_o people_n or_o whether_o more_o special_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n of_o old_a or_o whether_o more_o general_o of_o all_o the_o scripture_n both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n in_o what_o sense_n soever_o this_o light_n of_o pprophecy_n be_v take_v it_o be_v prefer_v before_o immediate_a revelation_n by_o voice_n from_o heaven_n as_o be_v a_o more_o certain_a infallible_a way_n to_o direct_v we_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a light_n for_o the_o further_a illustration_n whereof_o it_o will_v be_v not_o impertinent_a to_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a light_n whereof_o christ_n after_o a_o especial_a manner_n be_v the_o fountain_n and_o original_a 1._o the_o light_n of_o grace_n and_o truth_n in_o this_o life_n 2._o the_o light_n of_o glory_n and_o peace_n in_o that_o life_n to_o come_v and_o in_o both_o these_o respect_n christ_n be_v term_v the_o morning_n star_n the_o dayspring_n from_o on_o high_a or_o as_o in_o the_o text_n the_o dawn_n of_o the_o day_n the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o text_n according_a to_o some_o interpretation_n the_o word_n of_o pprophecy_n be_v as_o it_o be_v those_o beam_n which_o be_v display_v from_o christ_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n for_o our_o illumination_n and_o guidance_n in_o the_o path_n of_o grace_n and_o truth_n unto_o the_o mansion_n of_o glory_n and_o peace_n eternal_a thy_o word_n be_v a_o light_n psal_n 119._o and_o all_o they_o who_o enjoy_v this_o word_n of_o pprophecy_n in_o the_o right_a understanding_n and_o conscientious_a practice_n thereof_o be_v therefore_o term_v child_n of_o the_o light_n and_o of_o the_o day_n not_o of_o the_o night_n and_o of_o darkness_n 1_o thess_n 5.5_o but_o assure_o what_o ever_o seduce_v person_n may_v false_o gather_v from_o this_o text_n whosoever_o shall_v neglect_v or_o contemn_v the_o use_n of_o this_o light_n or_o obscure_v the_o same_o by_o false_a gloss_n and_o misinterpretation_n must_v read_v the_o apostle_n word_n backward_o and_o become_v child_n of_o the_o night_n and_o of_o darkness_n and_o not_o of_o the_o light_n and_o of_o the_o day_n but_o yet_o as_o the_o light_n of_o a_o candle_n be_v useless_a when_o the_o sun_n arise_v so_o the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n for_o our_o direction_n in_o the_o way_n of_o grace_n shall_v cease_v when_o the_o light_n of_o glory_n shall_v once_o arise_v and_o the_o dayspring_n of_o eternity_n appear_v when_o we_o shall_v be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n not_o by_o faith_n but_o by_o vision_n when_o we_o shall_v no_o more_o see_v he_o and_o enjoy_v he_o in_o his_o word_n and_o ordinance_n through_o a_o glass_n dark_o but_o face_n to_o face_n plain_o and_o full_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o he_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o we_o live_v in_o this_o darksome_a place_n of_o the_o world_n darken_a by_o ignorance_n and_o error_n by_o sinfulness_n and_o manifold_a temptation_n thereunto_o he_o that_o will_v not_o walk_v in_o darkness_n not_o know_v whither_o he_o go_v must_v make_v use_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n for_o a_o light_n unto_o his_o foot_n and_o a_o lantern_n unto_o his_o path_n against_o the_o use_n of_o humane_a learning_n by_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v allege_v 1_o cor._n 2.1_o 2.1,2,4_o 1_o cor._n 2.1,2,4_o etc._n etc._n and_o i_o brethren_n when_o i_o come_v to_o you_o come_v not_o with_o excellency_n of_o speech_n or_o of_o wisdom_n for_o i_o determine_v to_o know_v nothing_o but_o christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v and_o my_o speech_n and_o my_o preach_n be_v not_o with_o the_o entice_a word_n of_o man_n wisdom_n but_o in_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o power_n the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n take_v not_o away_o the_o use_n of_o humane_a learning_n because_o himself_o in_o other_o place_n make_v use_v thereof_o he_o have_v his_o book_n and_o writing_n which_o he_o command_v to_o be_v bring_v unto_o he_o 2_o tim._n 4.13_o he_o read_v the_o greek_a poet_n which_o he_o quote_v act._n 17.28_o tit._n 1.12_o he_o command_v timothy_n to_o give_v attendance_n to_o read_v 1_o tim._n 4.13_o and_o to_o study_v 2_o tim._n 2.15_o but_o among_o these_o corinthian_n at_o the_o first_o he_o decline_v the_o use_n of_o his_o humane_a learning_n not_o draw_v his_o argument_n from_o natural_a reason_n and_o probable_a discourse_n out_o of_o philosophy_n guild_v with_o curious_a quaint_a and_o rhetorical_a expression_n which_o he_o call_v the_o entice_a word_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d probable_a argument_n or_o persuasive_a discourse_n this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n he_o go_v to_o convert_v these_o corinthian_n but_o by_o the_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n i._n e._n he_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o by_o the_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n show_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 1._o do_v speak_v and_o foretell_v in_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n of_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o of_o his_o do_n and_o suffering_n for_o our_o salvation_n 2._o that_o he_o both_o visible_o descend_v on_o he_o and_o audible_o bare_a witness_n to_o he_o in_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n 3._o that_o he_o both_o visible_o and_o audible_o descend_v upon_o his_o apostle_n also_o and_o endue_v they_o with_o extraordinary_a gift_n and_o through_o their_o ministry_n also_o he_o descend_v upon_o other_o that_o be_v convert_v by_o they_o thus_o s._n paul_n preach_v christ_n to_o these_o corinthian_n by_o the_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o 2._o of_o power_n also_o viz._n the_o power_n of_o miracle_n cure_v discase_n speak_v with_o tongue_n these_o be_v the_o topical_a argument_n wherewith_o he_o persuade_v they_o to_o become_v christian_n and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o he_o give_v vers_fw-la 5._o that_o your_o faith_n may_v not_o stand_v in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o man_n but_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n i._n e._n that_o the_o ground_n of_o your_o belief_n in_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v the_o persuasion_n and_o allurement_n of_o man_n how_o wise_a soever_o but_o such_o as_o god_n himself_o make_v use_v of_o in_o a_o word_n his_o meaning_n in_o this_o place_n be_v that_o he_o preach_v unto_o they_o plain_o and_o not_o rhetorical_o and_o the_o argument_n he_o use_v be_v demonstrative_a and_o divine_a not_o probable_a and_o humane_a only_o but_o 1._o we_o may_v not_o hence_o gather_v that_o s._n paul_n do_v always_o decline_v the_o use_n of_o rhetorical_a and_o philosophical_a wisdom_n in_o his_o preach_n but_o such_o be_v his_o great_a wisdom_n that_o his_o preach_n be_v according_o to_o the_o condition_n and_o capacity_n of_o his_o hearer_n sometime_o more_o plain_o sometime_o more_o elegant_o and_o mysterious_o use_v sometime_o divine_a and_o sometime_o humane_a sometime_o demonstrative_a and_o sometime_o probable_a argument_n and_o persuasion_n he_o feed_v the_o babe_n in_o christ_n with_o milk_n as_o here_o verse_n 2._o i_o determine_v to_o know_v nothing_o among_o you_o but_o christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v but_o the_o more_o perfect_a and_o grow_v up_o in_o christ_n he_o feed_v with_o strong_a and_o solid_a meat_n as_o vers_n 6._o howbeit_o we_o speak_v wisdom_n among_o they_o that_o be_v perfect_a and_o 2._o when_o his_o preach_n be_v most_o plain_a it_o be_v not_o devoid_a of_o learn_v both_o divine_a and_o humane_a it_o be_v not_o without_o order_n method_n proper_a and_o pertinent_a expression_n like_o the_o upstart_n intruder_n into_o the_o ministerial_a office_n now_o a_o day_n who_o to_o avoid_v as_o they_o pretend_v the_o entice_a word_n of_o man_n wisdom_n speak_v not_o forth_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o soberness_n but_o rove_v and_o ramble_v about_o many_o point_n in_o divinity_n which_o right_o they_o understand_v not_o heap_v together_o variety_n of_o text_n and_o scripture_n expression_n without_o either_o order_n or_o right_a application_n as_o if_o to_o spend_v a_o hour_n or_o more_o in_o a_o rude_a and_o zealous_a delivery_n of_o religious_a nothing_o be_v to_o avoid_v the_o entice_n word_v of_o man_n wisdom_n and_o to_o preach_v in_o the_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o power_n 1_o cor._n 2.14_o but_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v he_o know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v but_o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a judge_v all_o thing_n lyra._n animalis_fw-la homo_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la habet_fw-la intellectum_fw-la &_o affectam_fw-la depress_n ad_fw-la sensibilia_fw-la lyra._n whence_o all_o enthusiast_n and_o pretender_n to_o the_o spirit_n most_o
obtainable_a but_o in_o the_o use_n of_o outward_a mean_n and_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n thereupon_o 2._o the_o other_o practical_a or_o the_o sanctify_a use_n of_o this_o doctrinal_a knowledge_n by_o the_o immediate_a influence_n of_o god_n spirit_n upon_o the_o soul_n enquickn_a and_o perfect_v the_o same_o in_o all_o obedience_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n as_o the_o body_n be_v enquickn_v and_o animate_v by_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o former_a of_o these_o must_v ever_o precede_v and_o go_v before_o the_o late_a for_o all_o holiness_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n do_v presuppose_v the_o knowledge_n thereof_o prius_fw-la est_fw-la deum_fw-la nosse_fw-la posteà_fw-la colere_fw-la say_v lactantius_n no_o man_n can_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o know_v it_o not_o nor_o make_v a_o sanctify_a use_n of_o that_o knowledge_n which_o he_o have_v not_o obtain_v but_o as_o in_o the_o procreation_n of_o the_o natural_a man_n 1._o the_o body_n be_v form_v and_o then_o 2._o the_o soul_n infuse_v so_o of_o the_o spiritual_a man_n also_o 1._o the_o body_n of_o sacred_a knowledge_n must_v be_v conceive_v and_o frame_v in_o the_o mind_n 2._o the_o soul_n of_o sanctification_n infuse_v in_o the_o obediential_a and_o practical_a use_n of_o this_o knowledge_n and_o both_o of_o these_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n the_o one_o the_o issue_n of_o his_o gift_n and_o the_o other_o of_o his_o grace_n but_o neither_o without_o the_o use_n of_o those_o respective_a mean_n which_o god_n have_v thereunto_o most_o gracious_o appoint_v 2._o whosoever_o pretend_v to_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o to_o have_v a_o secret_a teach_n from_o god_n because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o such_o as_o fear_v god_n must_v remember_v that_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o great_a presumption_n misbecome_v the_o humility_n of_o saint_n and_o direct_o oppose_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n to_o neglect_v the_o mean_n and_o depend_v upon_o miracle_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o will_n so_o that_o by_o the_o very_a act_n of_o depend_v upon_o immediate_a revelation_n they_o cut_v themselves_o off_o from_o all_o title_n and_o interest_n in_o those_o promise_n that_o be_v make_v to_o the_o meek_a lowly_a humble_a and_o such_o as_o fear_v the_o lord_n for_o how_o can_v they_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o babe_n to_o who_o the_o mystery_n of_o heaven_n be_v reveal_v who_o rank_n themselves_o among_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o perfect_a all_o profession_n and_o boasting_n of_o wisdom_n and_o holiness_n be_v symptom_n of_o pride_n and_o presumption_n be_v thereby_o evident_a token_n that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a sober_a wisdom_n or_o solid_a soulsaving_a piety_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o such_o professor_n but_o that_o they_o intrude_v into_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v not_o see_v be_v vain_o puff_v up_o by_o their_o fleshly_a mind_n 2.18_o col._n 2.18_o and_o the_o mind_n never_o swell_v with_o that_o fleshly_a humour_n of_o self-conceited_a knowledge_n and_o purity_n without_o the_o secret_a infusion_n of_o that_o diabolical_a spirit_n who_o as_o he_o be_v the_o first_o original_n of_o all_o pride_n and_o presumption_n so_o of_o all_o sinfulness_n and_o error_n thence_o derive_v and_o infect_v the_o heart_n and_o life_n of_o man_n for_o pride_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o sin_n 10.13_o ecclus._n 10.13_o and_o error_n also_o and_o he_o that_o have_v it_o shall_v power_n out_o abomination_n what_o and_o how_o great_a be_v the_o benefit_n of_o piety_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n as_o to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o god_n reveal_v will_n have_v be_v already_o express_v that_o it_o be_v as_o the_o very_a soul_n and_o spirit_n so_o the_o top_n and_o perfection_n of_o true_a wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n that_o it_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o our_o study_n and_o endeavour_n and_o of_o all_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a and_o that_o without_o this_o holiness_n of_o life_n all_o our_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v any_o way_n useful_a as_o to_o our_o own_o particular_n that_o it_o shall_v tend_v to_o our_o great_a condemnation_n at_o the_o last_o day_n luk._n 12.47_o that_o while_o we_o study_v for_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n with_o desire_n and_o intention_n only_o to_o be_v more_o wise_o and_o know_o pious_a and_o religious_a and_o withal_o do_v make_v a_o sanctify_a use_n of_o our_o knowledge_n receive_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o continue_v notionary_a and_o speculative_a in_o the_o brain_n but_o to_o be_v practical_a in_o the_o heart_n and_o have_v its_o influence_n upon_o the_o action_n of_o our_o life_n that_o thus_o i_o say_v god_n be_v invite_v and_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n will_v undoubted_o multiply_v and_o increase_v our_o talon_n and_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n open_v our_o eye_n to_o see_v more_o clear_o the_o way_n of_o his_o service_n and_o our_o own_o salvation_n than_o such_o person_n who_o have_v perhaps_o a_o great_a portion_n of_o learning_n but_o less_o piety_n and_o hence_o undoubted_o many_o person_n of_o mean_a gift_n and_o less_o learned_a have_v outstrip_v other_o more_o learned_a and_o know_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o holy_a mystery_n god_n of_o his_o great_a mercy_n enrich_v their_o understanding_n with_o more_o for_o the_o holy_a and_o pious_a use_n they_o have_v make_v of_o the_o less_o portion_n of_o knowledge_n impart_v to_o they_o but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o soul_n must_v not_o be_v advance_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o body_n of_o sacred_a knowledge_n nor_o that_o which_o be_v the_o end_n and_o perfection_n of_o true_a wisdom_n must_v not_o make_v null_a and_o void_a the_o mean_v god_n have_v destine_v thereunto_o nor_o may_v we_o presume_v upon_o our_o good_a desire_n pious_a intention_n and_o fancy_a relation_n unto_o god_n as_o this_o elect_a and_o people_n further_o than_o in_o all_o humility_n to_o wait_v upon_o he_o for_o his_o blessing_n not_o without_o but_o in_o the_o use_n of_o those_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v ordain_v for_o our_o direction_n and_o guidance_n therein_o to_o conclude_v this_o discourse_n in_o the_o word_n of_o judicious_a hooker_n 10._o eccl._n polit_fw-la l._n 5._o sect_n 10._o if_o licence_n be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o follow_v what_o himself_o imagine_v that_o god_n spirit_n do_v reveal_v unto_o he_o or_o what_o he_o suppose_v that_o god_n be_v likely_a to_o have_v reveal_v to_o some_o special_a person_n who_o virtue_n deserve_v to_o be_v high_o esteem_v what_o other_o effect_n will_v ensue_v hereupon_o but_o utter_a confusion_n of_o his_o church_n under_o pretence_n of_o be_v teach_v lead_v and_o guide_v by_o his_o spirit_n the_o gift_n and_o grace_n whereof_o do_v so_o natural_o all_o tend_v unto_o common_a peace_n that_o where_o such_o singularity_n be_v they_o who_o heart_n it_o possess_v aught_o to_o suspect_v it_o the_o more_o in_o as_o much_o as_o if_o it_o do_v come_v from_o god_n and_o shall_v for_o that_o cause_n prevail_v with_o other_o the_o same_o god_n which_o reveal_v it_o to_o they_o will_v also_o give_v they_o power_n of_o confirm_v it_o to_o other_o either_o with_o miraculous_a operation_n or_o with_o strong_a invincible_a remonstrance_n of_o sound_a reason_n such_o as_o whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o god_n will_v indeed_o have_v all_o man_n judgement_n give_v place_n unto_o it_o whereas_o now_o the_o error_n and_o insufficiency_n of_o their_o argument_n do_v make_v it_o on_o the_o contrary_a against_o they_o a_o strong_a presumption_n that_o god_n have_v not_o move_v their_o heart_n to_o think_v such_o thing_n as_o he_o have_v not_o enable_v they_o to_o prove_v the_o prayer_n o_o bless_a father_n of_o light_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o holy_a true_a divine_a and_o celestial_a revelation_n as_o thou_o have_v be_v please_v to_o reveal_v thy_o son_n unto_o we_o to_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n so_o give_v we_o heart_n to_o cleave_v fast_o to_o these_o divine_a revelation_n both_o to_o acquiesce_v and_o persevere_v in_o the_o sacred_a doctrine_n and_o save_a practice_n thereof_o take_v from_o we_o all_o vanity_n of_o mind_n and_o deceitfulness_n of_o imagination_n and_o let_v not_o the_o author_n of_o lie_n prevail_v upon_o our_o deprave_a fancy_n to_o take_v we_o off_o from_o a_o holy_a humble_a and_o constant_a dependence_n upon_o thou_o in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o truth_n ordain_v by_o thou_o let_v thy_o word_n be_v ever_o a_o light_n unto_o our_o foot_n and_o a_o lantern_n unto_o our_o path_n and_o let_v thy_o holy_a spirit_n ever_o clear_a this_o light_n to_o our_o mind_n and_o inflame_v our_o heart_n with_o the_o sacred_a fire_n of_o divine_a love_n and_o zealous_a obedience_n to_o thy_o holy_a will_n reveal_v in_o thy_o word_n
orthodox_n christian_n s._n augustine_n affirm_v of_o primianus_n and_o maximinianus_fw-la who_o through_o pride_n and_o vain_a glory_n lift_v up_o themselves_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o two_o faction_n among_o the_o donatist_n and_o it_o be_v well_o for_o they_o say_v the_o father_n such_o faction_n fall_v out_o for_o otherwise_o primianus_n have_v be_v postreminianus_n and_o maximinianus_fw-la have_v be_v minimianus_n person_n of_o who_o no_o notice_n have_v be_v take_v but_o now_o in_o a_o schism_n either_o of_o they_o be_v a_o jolly_a fellow_n and_o notorious_a in_o the_o way_n of_o oppose_v the_o church_n so_o jack_n straw_n and_o wat_n tiler_n have_v be_v bury_v in_o oblivion_n have_v they_o not_o raise_v a_o mutiny_n and_o make_v a_o insurrection_n and_o be_v there_o not_o too_o many_o among_o we_o who_o mean_a stamp_n call_v and_o part_n pride_n and_o vainglory_n have_v stir_v up_o to_o faction_n and_o schism_n partly_o to_o raise_v themselves_o up_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n of_o contempt_n and_o oblivion_n and_o partly_o out_o of_o covetousness_n know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o best_a fish_v in_o trouble_a water_n what_o else_o can_v it_o be_v but_o pride_n of_o heart_n that_o either_o move_v some_o to_o decry_v government_n as_o scorn_v to_o be_v under_o any_o command_n 6._o lib._n 6._o or_o that_o move_v other_o so_o stiff_o to_o contend_v for_o a_o parity_n in_o government_n as_o scorn_v any_o superior_n it_o be_v note_v by_o every_o man_n say_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n that_o of_o all_o man_n none_o can_v less_o endure_v parity_n and_o love_v more_o to_o command_v than_o they_o who_o have_v introduce_v it_o into_o the_o church_n be_v not_o this_o the_o gainsaying_n of_o corah_n who_o because_o he_o can_v not_o be_v highpriest_n himself_o he_o will_v have_v all_o priest_n equal_a and_o no_o one_o to_o lift_v himself_o above_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o lord_n numb_a 16.3_o 26._o quosvis_fw-la ad_fw-la intellectum_fw-la pravum_fw-la inten●…o_fw-la perversa_fw-la non_fw-la raperet_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la superbia_fw-la inslaret_n dum_fw-la enim_fw-la prae_fw-la caeteris_fw-la sapientes_fw-la arbitrantur_fw-la sequi_fw-la alios_fw-la ad_fw-la melius_fw-la intellecta_fw-la despiciunt_fw-la atque_fw-la ut_fw-la apud_fw-la vulgus_fw-la scientiae_fw-la nomen_fw-la exiorqueant_fw-la student_fw-la sum_fw-la mopere_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la rectè_fw-la intellecta_fw-la destruere_fw-la &_o sva_fw-la perversa_fw-la roborare_fw-la greg._n the_o cur_n past_a p._n 3._o adm_n 26._o and_o can_v it_o be_v other_o but_o the_o same_o tumour_n of_o pride_n and_o vainglory_n that_o move_v man_n to_o prefer_v their_o own_o private_a conception_n and_o extemporal_a effusion_n in_o prayer_n before_o the_o approve_a wise_n and_o command_v form_n of_o the_o church_n if_o you_o run_v through_o all_o the_o several_a part_n of_o heresy_n and_o kind_n of_o schism_n remember_v if_o you_o take_v notice_n of_o all_o the_o heresy_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n this_o humour_n of_o pride_n observe_v it_o who_o mill_n say_v reverend_a andrew_n 165._o andr._n serm_n of_o imag_n epist_n 165._o have_v bring_v forth_o most_o part_n of_o the_o heresy_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n mater_fw-la omnium_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la superbia_fw-la est_fw-la say_v aug._n temp._n diversis_fw-la locis_fw-la sunt_fw-la diversae_fw-la haereses_fw-la sed_fw-la una_fw-la mater_fw-la sup●rbia_fw-la omnes_fw-la genuit_fw-la sicut_fw-la una_fw-la mater_fw-la nostra_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la omnes_fw-la christianos_n fideles_fw-la toto_fw-la orbe_fw-la dissuse_n aug._n de_fw-fr temp._n the_o mother_n of_o all_o heresy_n be_v pride_n and_o so_o they_o be_v describe_v by_o 2_o pet._n 2.10_o to_o despise_v government_n to_o be_v presumptuous_a and_o self-willed_a and_o not_o afraid_a to_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n epist_n judas_n vers_fw-la 8._o and_o so_o the_o father_n again_o there_o be_v many_o heresy_n in_o many_o place_n but_o they_o have_v all_o one_o common_a mother_n which_o be_v pride_n in_o oppose_v private_a persuasion_n to_o the_o public_a resolution_n and_o observance_n of_o the_o church_n even_o as_o thore_fw-la be_v many_o faithful_a good_a christian_n disperse_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o these_o also_o have_v all_o but_o one_o common_a mother_n the_o catholic_n church_n to_o who_o they_o due_o render_v all_o obedience_n and_o submission_n 2._o a_o second_o cause_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v covetousness_n which_o be_v direct_o assert_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o tim._n 6.10_o for_o the_o love_n of_o money_n be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_a which_o while_o some_o have_v covet_v after_o they_o have_v err_v from_o the_o faith_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o balaams_n error_n in_o that_o he_o love_v the_o wage_n of_o righteousness_n the_o novatian_o call_v themselves_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d h._n e._n mundos_fw-la the_o pure_a and_o the_o clean_a but_o say_v isidore_n have_v they_o give_v themselves_o their_o proper_a character_n it_o shall_v have_v be_v not_o mundos_fw-la but_o mundanos_fw-la 8._o cathari_n mundiores_fw-la se_fw-la caeteris_fw-la praedicant_fw-la qui_fw-la nomen_fw-la suum_fw-la si_fw-la cognoscere_fw-la vellent_fw-la mundanos_fw-la se_fw-la potius_fw-la quam_fw-la mundos_fw-la vecarent_fw-la isid_n orig_n l._n 8._o not_o the_o puritan_n but_o the_o worldling_n covetousness_n inseparable_o cleave_v to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o heret_fw-la call_v crew_n as_o pride_n be_v the_o parent_n of_o they_o nor_o can_v we_o well_o imagine_v whether_o pride_n or_o covetousness_n reign_v more_o in_o montanus_n arrius_n and_o novatus_n when_o fail_v in_o their_o hope_n of_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n they_o become_v the_o head_n of_o the_o several_a heresy_n call_v by_o their_o several_a name_n aug._n estn_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la amator_fw-la esset_fw-la pucuniae_fw-la nisi_fw-la per_fw-la hoc_fw-la putaret_fw-la se_fw-la excellentiorem_fw-la esse_fw-la et_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la amaret_fw-la excellere_fw-la nisi_fw-la putaret_fw-la per_fw-la hoc_fw-la majores_fw-la divitias_fw-la habere_fw-la aug._n nor_o be_v it_o a_o bare_a and_o single_a covetousness_n but_o that_o which_o be_v the_o worst_a and_o most_o enormous_a kind_n thereof_o that_o often_o breed_v and_o always_o possess_v the_o spirit_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n viz._n the_o great_a and_o ery_v sin_n of_o sacrilege_n even_o a_o sacrilegious_a and_o evil_a eye_n after_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n sacrilege_n be_v one_o of_o the_o devil_n most_o strong_a and_o allure_a snare_n whereby_o he_o entrap_v man_n into_o heresy_n and_o schism_n it_o be_v a_o snare_n to_o the_o man_n who_o devour_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a prov._n 20.25_o 3._o a_o three_o cause_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v ignoranee_n and_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n as_o under_o the_o show_n and_o appearance_n of_o knowledge_n possess_v the_o mind_n which_o make_v all_o person_n in_o a_o error_n so_o stiff_a and_o perverse_a in_o the_o maintenance_n thereof_o their_o ignorance_n be_v not_o easy_o to_o be_v dispel_v by_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n because_o in_o what_o they_o be_v most_o ignorant_a they_o conceit_n themselves_o most_o know_a heretic_n in_o this_o respect_n be_v not_o unlike_a person_n that_o be_v drunken_a and_o yet_o think_v themselves_o sober_a and_o so_o become_v guilty_a of_o much_o wild_a and_o exotique_a demeanour_n the_o which_o not_o conceive_v themselves_o to_o be_v drink_v they_o fond_o imagine_v to_o be_v brave_o discreet_a and_o gallant_a so_o these_o profesling_n themselves_o to_o be_v wise_a they_o become_v fool_n rom._n 1.21_o be_v wed_v to_o their_o own_o opinion_n how_o false_a soever_o while_o they_o think_v themselves_o wise_a than_o those_o from_o who_o they_o ought_v to_o receive_v direction_n in_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n hence_o 1._o arise_v that_o exorbitant_a custom_n of_o the_o heretic_n to_o detract_v and_o undervalue_v their_o superior_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n divine_a and_o bold_o to_o presume_v to_o teach_v their_o teacher_n orat_fw-la greg._n nazian_n orat_fw-la at_o which_o presumption_n of_o a_o people_n gregory_n nazianzen_n be_v great_o offend_v use_v these_o word_n in_o a_o oration_n to_o they_o presume_v not_o you_o that_o be_v sheep_n to_o make_v yourselves_o guide_v of_o they_o that_o shall_v guide_v you_o neither_o seek_v you_o to_o overskip_v the_o fold_n which_o they_o about_o you_o have_v pitch_v it_o suffice_v for_o your_o part_n if_o you_o can_v well_o frame_v yourselves_o to_o be_v order_v take_v not_o upon_o yourselves_o to_o judge_v nor_o to_o make_v they_o subject_a to_o your_o law_n who_o shall_v be_v a_o law_n to_o you_o for_o god_n be_v not_o a_o god_n of_o sedition_n and_o confusion_n but_o of_o order_n and_o peace_n hence_o 2._o they_o presume_v to_o justify_v themselves_o and_o despise_v other_o which_o none_o dare_v presume_v to_o do_v but_o such_o as_o do_v not_o true_o know_v themselves_o such_o be_v that_o generation_n who_o be_v pure_a in_o
and_o yet_o as_o s._n judas_n observe_v the_o despise_v government_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n vers_fw-la 8._o to_o be_v righteous_a and_o just_a person_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o righteousness_n they_o render_v not_o to_o all_o man_n their_o due_a tribute_n to_o who_o tribute_n be_v due_a custom_n to_o who_o custom_n fear_v to_o who_o fear_n belong_v honour_n to_o who_o honour_n appertain_v rom._n 13.7_o no_o man_n ordinary_o profess_v more_o zeal_n to_o religion_n then_o heretic_n and_o to_o the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n yet_o none_o do_v more_o maim_n corrupt_a and_o deprave_v religion_n and_o undermine_v god_n holy_a worship_n the_o great_a heat_n of_o their_o zeal_n be_v lay_v out_o and_o exercise_v in_o cry_v out_o against_o part_n and_o essential_a branch_n of_o god_n service_n some_o against_o god_n commandment_n other_o against_o the_o article_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a faith_n other_o against_o that_o all-perfect_a form_n and_o pattern_n of_o devotion_n the_o lord_n prayer_n some_o against_o public_a prayer_n other_o against_o the_o sacrament_n some_o be_v against_o the_o place_n other_o against_o the_o time_n other_o against_o the_o person_n devote_v to_o the_o sacred_a service_n of_o god_n and_o other_o sacrilegious_o rob_v he_o of_o the_o mean_n and_o maintenance_n of_o his_o service_n s._n james_n tell_v we_o pure_a religion_n and_o undefiled_a before_o god_n be_v to_o visit_v the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n and_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o unspotted_a of_o the_o world_n jam._n 1.27_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o heretic_n none_o more_o to_o profess_v purity_n of_o religion_n and_o none_o less_o charitable_a to_o the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n who_o number_n be_v increase_v by_o their_o cruelty_n not_o relieve_v by_o their_o mercy_n and_o as_o to_o the_o pollution_n of_o the_o world_n none_o more_o subtle_a and_o active_a to_o undermine_v their_o neighbour_n and_o by_o covetousness_n injustice_n false_a accusation_n and_o all_o unlawful_a and_o indirect_a mean_n to_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o mean_n estate_n and_o preferment_n in_o the_o world_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o heresy_n and_o sedition_n or_o schism_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n because_o both_o they_o proceed_v from_o fleshly_a lust_n pride_n covetise_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v themselves_o also_o productive_a of_o many_o exorbitant_a and_o wicked_a work_n nor_o be_v it_o possible_a but_o that_o all_o heresy_n and_o heretical_a opinion_n must_v needs_o produce_v loose_a sinful_a and_o dissolute_a action_n because_o the_o act_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o of_o the_o will_v be_v so_o near_o and_o mix_o enterwoven_v that_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o one_o do_v ever_o corrupt_a and_o vitiate_v the_o other_o and_o indeed_o there_o be_v few_o heresy_n which_o either_o do_v not_o direct_o teach_v or_o secret_o imply_v some_o kind_n of_o looseness_n exorbitancy_n and_o sinfulness_n of_o action_n the_o gnostic_n and_o ebionite_n open_o declaim_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o virgin_n chastity_n the_o nicholaitan_n will_v have_v all_o wife_n in_o common_a the_o manichee_n with_o their_o ancestor_n the_o disciple_n of_o simon_n magus_n be_v all_o of_o loose_a dissolute_a licentious_a life_n of_o who_o s._n peter_n particular_o speak_v 2_o pet._n 2.10_o yet_o they_o i._n e._n simon_n magus_n and_o his_o disciple_n walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o lust_n of_o uncleanness_n and_o despise_v government_n presumptuous_a be_v they_o and_o self-willed_a they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n the_o circumcellion_n be_v teach_v to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o themselves_o and_o the_o montanist_n also_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o many_o other_o separatist_n of_o the_o same_o stamp_n open_o profess_v that_o themselves_o be_v the_o only_a people_n of_o god_n have_v only_o right_a therefore_o to_o the_o creature_n all_o other_o beside_o themselves_o being_n usurper_n of_o what_o they_o enjoy_v and_o so_o it_o be_v no_o injustice_n in_o they_o to_o rob_v plunder_v and_o dispossess_v they_o of_o their_o good_n and_o estate_n the_o solifidian_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n and_o so_o they_o may_v live_v as_o they_o listen_v and_o general_o all_o heretic_n rail_v revile_v censure_n judge_n and_o condemn_v all_o that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o own_o mind_n and_o way_n which_o be_v sin_n of_o no_o small_a account_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o what_o else_o have_v fill_v all_o christendom_n with_o faction_n and_o sedition_n with_o tumult_n and_o trouble_n with_o massacre_n war_n and_o bloodshed_n but_o first_o the_o broach_n and_o belief_n of_o heresy_n and_o lie_n and_o rent_v the_o seamless_a coat_n of_o christ_n by_o uncharitable_a excommunication_n and_o schismatical_a separation_n both_o of_o general_a church_n and_o particular_a congregation_n each_o from_o other_o we_o read_v not_o that_o the_o arrian_n or_o the_o donatist_n teach_v or_o profess_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v for_o matter_n of_o action_n sinful_a factious_a and_o seditious_a and_o yet_o the_o tumult_n and_o trouble_n uncharitable_a censure_n cruel_a persecution_n that_o follow_v both_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o other_o be_v too_o many_o to_o be_v express_v it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o good_a christian_n to_o be_v meek_a gentle_a humble_a patient_a obedient_a to_o superior_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o good_a pastor_n to_o exhort_v their_o people_n to_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o fruit_n or_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o heretic_n on_o the_o contrary_a part_n blow_v the_o trumpet_n of_o war_n faction_n division_n cry_v down_o down_o still_o with_o this_o and_o that_o and_o other_o piece_n of_o religious_a worship_n which_o they_o brand_v with_o the_o loathe_a name_n of_o superstition_n only_o because_o it_o suit_n not_o with_o their_o deceive_a imagination_n 3._o great_a be_v the_o danger_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n because_o the_o spirit_n of_o heresy_n and_o faction_n shut_v out_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o rob_v the_o soul_n of_o all_o divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o way_n of_o life_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o that_o heretic_n be_v general_o cruel_a mischievous_a and_o evil_a person_n since_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n without_o which_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o that_o good_a be_v and_o grace_n can_v live_v out_o of_o the_o company_n of_o her_o twin-sister_n truth_n grace_n and_o truth_n flow_v from_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n as_o light_v and_o heat_n from_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n both_o which_o be_v so_o coessential_a to_o the_o sun_n itself_o that_o the_o one_o can_v have_v a_o be_v without_o the_o other_o all_o error_n therefore_o when_o through_o perverseness_n and_o wilfulness_n they_o be_v grow_v up_o to_o be_v heresy_n as_o they_o blind_v the_o understanding_n so_o they_o harden_v the_o heart_n also_o and_o provoke_v the_o most_o just_a god_n to_o give_v up_o such_o person_n to_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n rom_n 1.28_o 4._o heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v the_o more_o dangerous_a in_o that_o the_o infection_n know_v no_o bound_n or_o limit_n but_o spread_v and_o eat_v like_o a_o canker_n 2.17_o 2_o tim._n 2.17_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o tim._n 2.17_o or_o as_o a_o gangrene_n which_o beginning_n in_o a_o small_a unperceivable_a spot_n increase_v still_o if_o it_o be_v not_o destroy_v till_o it_o overspread_v and_o consume_v the_o body_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o error_n that_o which_o begin_v many_o time_n but_o with_o a_o small_a scruple_n if_o it_o be_v not_o wise_o stay_v increase_v into_o such_o erroneous_a opinion_n as_o be_v destructive_a to_o the_o main_a body_n of_o religion_n and_o be_v of_o a_o church_n thus_o montanus_n first_o begin_v with_o the_o conceit_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n then_o to_o limit_v the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o himself_o and_o his_o follower_n thence_o they_o fall_v into_o the_o sin_n of_o schism_n and_o break_v off_o communion_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o proceed_v at_o length_n to_o this_o monstrous_a conceit_n among_o they_o that_o only_o the_o house_n of_o montanus_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o montanus_n himself_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o so_o among_o we_o first_o the_o ceremony_n and_o then_o the_o substance_n both_o of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o divine_a service_n be_v first_o scruple_v and_o then_o cry_v down_o and_o afterward_o pull_v down_o also_o first_o christian_n liberty_n be_v pretend_v and_o then_o brutish_a disorder_n and_o confusion_n follow_v the_o church_n be_v free_a it_o be_v most_o true_a and_o not_o to_o be_v clog_v and_o burden_a with_o a_o number_n of_o needless_a fruitless_a insignificant_a ceremony_n but_o
yet_o not_o so_o free_a as_o to_o be_v free_v of_o all_o order_n decency_n reverence_n unity_n and_o uniformity_n in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n but_o that_o scrupulous_a and_o new_a fangle_a soul_n when_o they_o once_o begin_v to_o doubt_v and_o then_o leave_v the_o way_n of_o truth_n like_o traveller_n that_o have_v lose_v their_o way_n wander_v up_o and_o down_o and_o be_v as_o far_o if_o not_o far_o off_o their_o journey_n end_n then_o when_o first_o they_o leave_v the_o high_a and_o beat_a road_n it_o will_v be_v endless_a to_o reckon_v up_o the_o several_a sect_n and_o monstrous_a heresy_n which_o have_v creep_v in_o among_o we_o at_o this_o one_o gap_n first_o of_o all_o viz._n the_o schismatical_a desertion_n of_o that_o public_a form_n of_o prayer_n administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n institute_v and_o command_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o the_o obedient_a son_n and_o faithful_a member_n thereof_o one_o who_o have_v compute_v the_o heresy_n which_o seven_o year_n ago_o spring_v up_o from_o that_o time_n when_o the_o common-prayer_n be_v abolish_v say_v they_o have_v double_v the_o number_n of_o what_o they_o be_v in_o s._n augustine_n time_n and_o in_o his_o day_n they_o be_v very_o near_o fourscore_o and_o they_o be_v much_o multiply_v since_o that_o time_n and_o daily_o do_v increase_v for_o evil_a man_n and_o seducer_n shall_v wax_v worse_o and_o worse_o deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v 2._o tim._n 3.13_o nor_o must_v we_o hope_v for_o other_o till_o the_o god_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o peace_n be_v please_v together_o with_o his_o truth_n to_o restore_v unity_n and_o order_n in_o his_o worship_n whereof_o for_o our_o manifold_a sin_n he_o have_v so_o long_o deprive_v we_o 5._o heresy_n and_o schism_n as_o they_o be_v the_o curse_a parent_n of_o sin_n so_o of_o judgement_n also_o both_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a as_o to_o temporal_a judgement_n s._n stephen_n tell_v we_o out_o of_o amos_n 5.25_o that_o if_o we_o make_v to_o ourselves_o tabernacle_n or_o figure_n to_o worship_v they_o our_o punishment_n shall_v be_v to_o be_v carry_v away_o beyond_o babylon_n act._n 7.43_o babylon_n say_v the_o father_n 18._o aug_n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la l._n 18._o est_fw-la civitas_fw-la illa_fw-la confusionis_fw-la quae_fw-la indifferenter_fw-la habet_fw-la philosophos_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la diversa_fw-la &_o adversa_fw-la sentientes_fw-la that_o city_n of_o confusion_n which_o consist_v of_o person_n of_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a opinion_n each_o to_o other_o and_o that_o be_v the_o portion_n of_o those_o people_n that_o either_o vent_n or_o addict_v themselves_o to_o new_a opinion_n the_o fond_a imagination_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n they_o shall_v dwell_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o perpetual_a strife_n and_o contention_n and_o the_o babylonish_n confusion_n of_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a opinion_n each_o to_o other_o whereas_o god_n city_n the_o church_n be_v a_o city_n that_o be_v at_o unity_n in_o itself_o the_o bless_a inhabitant_n of_o which_o city_n the_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v all_o of_o one_o heart_n and_o of_o one_o mind_n neither_o be_v there_o or_o aught_o there_o to_o be_v in_o this_o city_n as_o in_o babel_n liberty_n for_o every_o sect-master_n to_o set_v up_o what_o imagination_n he_o please_v without_o control_n for_o when_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n produce_v licentiousness_n of_o opinion_n confusion_n and_o disorder_n must_v needs_o ensue_v and_o if_o babylon_n confusion_n go_v before_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n will_v not_o be_v far_o behind_o for_o what_o else_o can_v be_v the_o end_n of_o confusion_n through_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n but_o ruin_n and_o desolation_n the_o bless_a fruit_n of_o unity_n and_o concord_n be_v peace_n and_o prosperity_n concordiâ_fw-la res_fw-la parvae_fw-la crescunt_fw-la and_o the_o curse_a effect_n of_o contention_n and_o variety_n of_o opinion_n be_v war_n and_o destruction_n discordiâ_fw-la maximae_fw-la dilabuntur_fw-la the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o example_n of_o both_o kind_n therefore_o be_v there_o no_o one_o christian_a duty_n whereunto_o we_o have_v more_o pathetical_a and_o zealous_a admonition_n in_o the_o scripture_n than_o this_o of_o unity_n and_o agreement_n both_o in_o judgement_n and_o affection_n for_o this_o our_o bless_a lord_n so_o servent_o pray_v joh._n 17.11,22,23_o to_o this_o he_o so_o frequent_o exhort_v he_o apostle_n mark_v 9.50_o joh_n 14.27_o 25._o qui_fw-la perversa_fw-la ment_fw-la de_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la pacis_fw-la discordiam_fw-la faciunt_fw-la justo_fw-la dei_fw-la examine_v ipsi_fw-la de_fw-la verbis_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la moriuntur_fw-la greg._n the_o cur_n past_a adm._n 25._o and_o his_o apostle_n all_o christian_n rom._n 12.4_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 15.6_o &_o 1_o cor._n 1.10_o now_o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n by_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o you_o all_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o division_n among_o you_o but_o that_o you_o be_v perfect_o join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n so_o also_o 2_o cor._n 13.11_o ephes_n 4.1_o etc._n etc._n phil._n 1.27_o &_o 2.2_o he_o therefore_o say_v the_o father_n that_o through_o perverseness_n of_o mind_n shall_v out_o of_o the_o precept_n of_o peace_n and_o concord_n create_v dissension_n and_o strife_n create_v death_n to_o himself_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o life_n charity_n be_v of_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o christianity_n the_o queen_n of_o grace_n the_o sum_n perfection_n and_o fulfil_v of_o the_o divine_a law_n but_o all_o the_o bond_n of_o christian_a charity_n and_o therein_o all_o the_o sacred_a duty_n we_o owe_v both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n eccl_n quam_fw-la verò_fw-la dilectionem_fw-la eustodit_fw-la &_o cogitat_fw-la qui_fw-la discordiae_fw-la farore_fw-la visanus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la scindit_fw-la pacem_fw-la turbat_fw-la charitatem_fw-la dissipat_v cyp._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl_n be_v infringe_v and_o transgress_v by_o contention_n strife_n and_o schismatical_a rend_n and_o tear_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n into_o faction_n and_o party_n and_o what_o ever_o piety_n such_o person_n may_v outward_o make_v show_n of_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o have_v any_o true_a charity_n say_v cyprian_n or_o love_n either_o to_o god_n in_o the_o first_o place_n or_o to_o their_o neighbour_n in_o the_o next_o who_o endeavour_v not_o to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n ephes_n 4.3_o without_o which_o no_o man_n shall_v ever_o see_v the_o lord_n heb._n 12.14_o and_o this_o will_v yet_o further_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v 6._o that_o schism_n alone_o without_o any_o heretical_a opinion_n though_o these_o two_o can_v hardly_o be_v part_v cut_v a_o man_n off_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v a_o insurrection_n a_o be_v in_o arm_n against_o the_o church_n say_v cyprian_n eccl_n arma_fw-la contra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la portat_fw-la cyp._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl_n and_o he_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v join_v to_o a_o adulteress_n say_v the_o same_o father_n ibid._n cyp._n ibid._n and_o cut_v himself_o off_o from_o all_o the_o promise_v make_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n nor_o must_v he_o think_v to_o own_o god_n for_o his_o father_n who_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n for_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n 1_o cor._n 12.12_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n say_v s._n aug._n 25._o aug_n de_fw-fr correc_fw-la donist_n c._n 25._o no_o man_n can_v be_v righteous_a while_o he_o stand_v separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o as_o any_o part_n or_o member_n of_o man_n natural_a body_n be_v cut_v off_o the_o body_n be_v thereby_o devoid_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n so_o the_o man_n that_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a be_v thereby_o devoid_a of_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o righteousness_n though_o he_o do_v retain_v the_o shape_n form_n and_o likeness_n of_o a_o true_a live_a member_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n irenaeus_n give_v the_o reason_n further_o out_o of_o 1_o cor._n 12.28_o in_o the_o church_n god_n have_v set_v apostle_n prophet_n teacher_n &_o universam_fw-la operationem_fw-la spiritus_fw-la reliquam_fw-la 40._o irenae_n advers._fw-la haerd_n 3._o c._n 40._o all_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n be_v therein_o dispense_v cujus_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la participes_fw-la etc._n etc._n whereof_o they_o be_v not_o partaker_n who_o come_v not_o unto_o the_o church_n to_o be_v join_v thereunto_o but_o defraud_v themselves_o of_o life_n by_o evil_a opinion_n and_o worse_a action_n vbi_fw-la enim_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ibi_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la for_o where_o the_o church_n
be_v there_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n and_o sanctification_n 7._o heretic_n 76._o extra_n ecclesiam_fw-la consistens_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la pacem_fw-la &_o dilectionem_fw-la christi_fw-la saciens_fw-la inter_fw-la adversaros_fw-la computetur_fw-la cyp._n ep_v 76._o and_o schismatic_n have_v be_v ever_o account_v the_o great_a adversary_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o people_n who_o intestine_a broil_n and_o homebred_a division_n have_v do_v more_o mischief_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n than_o all_o the_o external_a persecution_n of_o bloody_a tyrant_n and_o heathen_n hence_o the_o sharp_a command_n of_o the_o apostle_n against_o such_o tit._n 3.10,11_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o the_o first_o or_o second_o admonition_n reject_v know_v that_o he_o that_o be_v such_o subvert_v and_o sin_v because_o condemn_v of_o himself_o such_o a_o one_o be_v self-condemned_n have_v 1._o pass_v sentence_n upon_o himself_o by_o profess_v against_o the_o doctrine_n and_o divide_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o 2._o he_o have_v do_v execution_n upon_o himself_o also_o for_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v himself_o in_o go_v out_o from_o the_o church_n quomodo_fw-la te_fw-la à_fw-la tot_fw-la gregibus_fw-la scidisti_fw-la exscidisti_fw-la teipsum_fw-la 75._o firmil_n ad_fw-la cyp._n ep._n 75._o he_o that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o reject_v have_v no_o company_n with_o he_o 2_o thess_n 3.14_o s._n john_n go_v to_o wash_v himself_o in_o a_o bath_n and_o there_o espy_v cerinthus_n a_o heretic_n leap_v hasty_o out_o of_o the_o bath_n again_o say_v that_o he_o fear_v the_o fabric_n of_o the_o bath_n will_v fall_v upon_o they_o all_o that_o be_v there_o since_o cerinthus_n the_o enemy_n of_o truth_n be_v in_o it_o 3._o iren._n advers._fw-la haer._n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o and_o polycarpus_n who_o be_v s._n john_n disciple_n and_o hear_v these_o word_n from_o the_o apostle_n meet_v with_o martion_n another_o heretic_n who_o say_v unto_o he_o cognosce_fw-la nos_fw-la acknowledge_v we_o for_o the_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n answer_v i_o know_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o first_o bear_v of_o satan_n so_o great_a fear_n say_v irenaeus_n have_v the_o apostle_n and_o their_o disciple_n of_o have_v any_o communication_n with_o person_n that_o have_v deprave_v and_o corrupt_v the_o truth_n 62._o id._n l_o 4._o c._n 62._o according_a to_o tit._n 3.10_o for_o nulla_fw-la ab_fw-la iis_fw-la tanta_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la corruptio_fw-la quanta_fw-la est_fw-la schismatis_fw-la pernicies_fw-la say_v the_o same_o father_n athanasius_n and_o epiphanius_n deny_v heretic_n nisi_fw-la homonymωs_fw-la to_o be_v call_v christian_n and_o optatus_n tell_v we_o ●_o apparet_fw-la antichristos_fw-la omnes_fw-la esse_fw-la quos_fw-la constat_fw-la à_fw-la charitate_fw-la atque_fw-la ab_fw-la unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la r_o ecessisse_fw-la opt._n l._n ●_o that_o schismatic_n be_v the_o antichrist_n speak_v of_o by_o s._n john_n 1_o joh._n 2.18_o for_o so_o they_o be_v describe_v vers_fw-la 19_o they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o etc._n etc._n which_o be_v the_o way_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o description_n of_o schismatic_n and_o he_o instance_n in_o novatian_n qui_fw-la extra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la consistens_fw-la inter_fw-la antichristos_fw-la computetur_fw-la the_o samaritan_n who_o be_v schismatic_n cyprian_n 76._o addendo_fw-la autem_fw-la civitatem_fw-la samaritano_n they_o de●ere_v omitti_fw-la ubi_fw-la crant_fw-la schismatici_fw-la ostendit_fw-la schismaticos_fw-la gemilibus_fw-la adaequari_fw-la cyp._n ep._n 76._o from_o the_o jewish_a church_n the_o jew_n therefore_o have_v no_o conversation_n with_o they_o joh._n 4.9_o and_o they_o be_v reckon_v by_o our_o saviour_n with_o the_o gentile_n mat._n 10.5_o 8._o the_o sad_a condition_n of_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n lie_v under_o the_o guilt_n of_o grievous_a sin_n and_o be_v obnoxious_a thereby_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v frequent_o also_o remember_v by_o the_o father_n how_o be_v they_o without_o all_o hope_n say_v cyprian_n ibid._n id._n ibid._n and_o incur_v god_n heavy_a indignation_n to_o their_o own_o ruin_n who_o make_v a_o schism_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v declare_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o king_n where_o the_o ten_o tribe_n make_v a_o breach_n and_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o depart_v from_o judah_n and_o benjamin_n the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o be_v wroth_a with_o the_o whole_a seed_n of_o israel_n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o corah_n d._n than_o and_o abiram_n be_v manifest_v and_o prove_v say_v the_o same_o father_n in_o the_o same_o place_n 164._o aug._n ep_v 164._o that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o guilty_a of_o great_a sin_n but_o liable_a to_o grievous_a punishment_n who_o rash_o join_v themselves_o with_o schismatic_n illud_fw-la scelus_fw-la ad_fw-la exemplum_fw-la devitandi_fw-la god_n for_o the_o present_a so_o grievous_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o corah_n and_o his_o complice_n give_v we_o thereby_o a_o example_n say_v s._n aug._n to_o avoid_v the_o same_o and_o show_v that_o when_o he_o spare_v to_o punish_v such_o person_n in_o this_o life_n the_o great_a punishment_n he_o reserve_v for_o they_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v which_o be_v affirm_v 2_o pet._n 2.9_o for_o god_n will_v judge_v such_o person_n say_v irenaeus_n who_o make_v schism_n and_o division_n mind_v more_o their_o own_o utility_n than_o the_o church_n unity_n qui_fw-la propter_fw-la modicas_fw-la quaslibet_fw-la causas_fw-la magnum_fw-la &_o gloriosum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la censeindunt_fw-la 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o who_o for_o every_o light_a cause_n and_o unnecessary_a scruple_n rend_v the_o great_a and_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v destroy_v the_o same_o speak_v of_o peace_n and_o charity_n but_o make_v war_n and_o division_n strain_v at_o a_o gnat_n and_o swallow_v the_o camel_n god_n service_n be_v the_o way_n of_o man_n salvation_n and_o that_o nation_n or_o kingdom_n which_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o lord_n shall_v perish_v isa_n 6.12_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o god_n service_n be_v faith_n for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n heb._n 11.6_o now-the_a true_a holy_a and_o orthodox_n faith_n be_v but_o one_o eph_n 4.5_o therefore_o term_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n vers_fw-la 13._o now_o he_o that_o please_v not_o god_n by_o the_o mean_a of_o a_o true_a faith_n do_v displease_v and_o fight_v against_o he_o by_o the_o opposition_n of_o a_o false_a faith_n according_a to_o our_o saviour_n own_o rule_n mat._n 12.30_o he_o that_o be_v not_o with_o i_o be_v against_o i_o and_o he_o that_o gather_v not_o with_o i_o scatter_v abroad_o and_o undoubted_o he_o that_o be_v against_o christ_n he_o that_o be_v his_o adversary_n make_v himself_o immediate_o liable_a to_o eternal_a condemnation_n which_o be_v effect_v by_o every_o one_o that_o hold_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o i_o be_v condemn_v already_o joh._n 3.18_o in_o a_o word_n as_o the_o true_a faith_n believe_v and_o obey_v be_v the_o way_n of_o life_n so_o a_o false_a faith_n embrace_v and_o follow_v be_v the_o high_a way_n of_o death_n and_o ruin_n as_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n be_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o the_o word_n of_o untruth_n and_o error_n be_v the_o key_n that_o open_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n as_o the_o first_o be_v that_o true_a and_o sacred_a light_n which_o discover_v and_o clear_v the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o light_n and_o life_n everlasting_a so_o the_o latter_a be_v the_o ignis_fw-la fatuus_fw-la the_o false_a fire_n that_o misguide_v the_o wander_a soul_n of_o man_n to_o the_o confine_n of_o that_o kingdom_n where_o dwell_v blackness_n of_o darkness_n for_o evermore_o of_o all_o seducer_n and_o maintainer_n of_o heresy_n the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n affirm_v that_o they_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a destruction_n that_o their_o judgement_n of_o a_o long_a time_n linger_v not_o and_o their_o damnation_n slumber_v not_o 2_o pet._n 2.1,2,3_o chap._n viii_o rule_n and_o direction_n for_o the_o avoid_n of_o error_n in_o religion_n that_o we_o may_v be_v the_o better_o arm_v against_o the_o assault_n of_o heretic_n and_o heretical_a opinion_n in_o religion_n our_o lord_n and_o master_n have_v not_o only_o foretell_v we_o that_o false_a teacher_n shall_v in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n arise_v and_o error_n spring_v up_o with_o the_o truth_n 17.23_o mat._n 24.23_o &_o 7.15_o mar._n 13.21_o luk._n 17.23_o as_o tare_n amid_o the_o wheat_n but_o also_o have_v strict_o charge_v we_o to_o beware_v of_o they_o not_o to_o follow_v after_o they_o nor_o believe_v they_o who_o pretence_n shall_v be_v so_o plausible_a their_o outward_a appearance_n of_o holiness_n so_o specious_a and_o take_v and_o their_o word_n and_o work_n by_o the_o secret_a and_o invisible_a assistance_n of_o satan_n so_o extraordinary_a as_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a
to_o strictness_n and_o austerity_n of_o life_n than_o other_o have_v and_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a quickness_n and_o volubility_n of_o language_n and_o a_o natural_a ardour_n and_o fervency_n of_o mind_n wherewith_o some_o man_n be_v endow_v more_o than_o other_o which_o be_v not_o therefore_o infallible_a token_n that_o all_o opinion_n such_o person_n maintain_v be_v orthodox_n and_o true_a scultetus_n tell_v of_o a_o arch-heretic_n in_o germany_n call_v swenchfield_n eccle_n abrab_n scult_a annual_a eccle_n a_o great_a sect-master_n who_o among_o other_o extravagancy_n hold_v many_o blasphemous_a opinion_n touch_v the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o this_o man_n do_v ardentes_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la preces_fw-la creberrimè_fw-la fundere_fw-la be_v both_o very_a fervent_a and_o very_o frequent_a in_o his_o prayer_n unto_o god_n hacket_n who_o be_v execute_v for_o blasphemy_n in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v report_v to_o have_v excel_v so_o much_o in_o the_o gift_n of_o extempore_o prayer_n that_o his_o disciple_n do_v believe_v he_o to_o be_v altogether_o inflame_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o that_o his_o expression_n be_v immediate_o from_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o he_o may_v not_o obtain_v from_o god_n by_o his_o prayer_n basilides_n the_o great_a duke_n of_o muscovy_n be_v very_o much_o exercise_v both_o in_o prayer_n and_o fast_v and_o very_o severe_a towards_o other_o under_o his_o command_n that_o do_v not_o conform_v to_o his_o example_n he_o have_v his_o feign_a vision_n 2._o paulus_n odour_n bornius_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la quat_n l._n 2._o and_o revelation_n also_o and_o yet_o a_o great_a tyrant_n and_o a_o more_o bloody_a villain_n christendom_n have_v not_o see_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o the_o novatian_o and_o donatist_n of_o the_o christian_a be_v far_o great_a pretender_n to_o piety_n and_o strictness_n of_o life_n than_o the_o true_o orthodox_n of_o either_o church_n and_o yet_o very_o great_a and_o notorious_a schismatic_n not_o to_o be_v cozen_v therefore_o with_o fair_a and_o goodly_a pretence_n of_o any_o party_n or_o sect_n of_o man_n how_o seem_o holy_a and_o zealous_a soever_o and_o pretend_v that_o they_o have_v christ_n that_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o only_o be_v in_o the_o right_n when_o they_o be_v deep_o involve_v in_o a_o abyss_n of_o error_n our_o lord_n have_v forearm_v we_o with_o sound_n and_o save_a counsel_n mat._n 24.23_o etc._n etc._n then_o if_o any_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o lo_o here_o be_v christ_n or_o lo_o there_o believe_v it_o not_o for_o there_o shall_v arise_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n wherefore_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n go_v not_o forth_o behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o secret_a chamber_n believe_v it_o not_o for_o as_o the_o lightning_n come_v out_o of_o the_o east_n and_o shine_v unto_o the_o west_n so_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v two_o rule_n for_o the_o avoid_v infection_n by_o false_a prophet_n under_o specious_a pretence_n be_v hence_o observable_a 1._o illic_fw-la habet_fw-la unaquacunque_fw-la haeresis_fw-la vel_fw-la certas_fw-la mundi_fw-la part_n unde_fw-la 〈◊〉_d ecce_fw-la hic_fw-la ecce_fw-la illic_fw-la every_o heresy_n say_v the_o gloss_n be_v limit_v to_o some_o particular_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o infection_n be_v not_o universal_o diffuse_v therefore_o it_o be_v say_v lo_o here_o or_o lo_o there_o if_o any_o man_n then_o shall_v limit_v christ_n to_o his_o particular_a church_n much_o less_o to_o his_o particular_a sect_n or_o fraternity_n believe_v it_o not_o for_o such_o be_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n ordin_fw-fr ne_fw-fr credatur_fw-la schismaticis_fw-la nomine_fw-la autem_fw-la orientis_fw-la &_o occidentis_fw-la torum_fw-la orbem_fw-la designat_fw-la gloss_n ordin_fw-fr for_o the_o truth_n display_v from_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n like_o the_o light_n of_o the_o heaven_n be_v diffuse_v from_o east_n to_o west_n or_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n which_o render_v the_o church_n i_o e._n all_o sound_n and_o sincere_a professor_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o well_o catholic_n as_o holy_a 2._o id._n well_o in_o occultis_fw-la aut_fw-la obscuris_fw-la conventiculis_fw-la curiositatem_fw-la hominum_fw-la decipit_fw-la haeresis_fw-la id._n heresy_n and_o schism_n seek_v out_o obscure_a and_o retire_a place_n and_o begin_v in_o conventicle_n and_o private_a meeting_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o secret_a chamber_n so_o the_o apostle_n of_o deceiver_n also_o they_o creep_v into_o house_n and_o lead_v captive_a silly_a woman_n etc._n etc._n 2_o tim._n 3.6_o but_o veritas_fw-la non_fw-la quaerit_fw-la angulos_fw-la truth_n seek_v no_o lurk_a hole_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o appear_v in_o public_a be_v like_o the_o light_n that_o shine_v from_o east_n to_o west_n open_a free_a and_o manifest_a to_o all_o except_o force_v to_o retirement_n by_o persecution_n and_o violence_n 9_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o error_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o observe_v further_o that_o a_o truth_n be_v not_o to_o be_v disbelieved_a or_o reject_v because_o it_o be_v profess_v by_o lewd_a and_o licentious_a person_n or_o maintain_v by_o a_o church_n and_o people_n that_o be_v in_o other_o respect_v erroneous_a and_o misguided_a for_o truth_n be_v truth_n by_o what_o mouth_n soever_o it_o be_v speak_v and_o it_o be_v the_o more_o confirm_v to_o be_v truth_n because_o it_o be_v even_o by_o the_o enemy_n of_o truth_n attest_v to_o be_v so_o the_o unwary_a neglect_n of_o this_o rule_n have_v not_o be_v the_o least_o inlet_n to_o manifold_a error_n for_o it_o be_v too_o usual_a with_o many_o to_o object_n both_o against_o orthodox_n truth_n and_o ecclesiastical_a order_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n that_o this_o or_o that_o the_o papist_n hold_v and_o against_o a_o strict_a careful_a conscientious_a life_n on_o the_o other_o that_o thus_o and_o thus_o the_o puritan_n profess_v hence_o many_o truth_n have_v be_v reject_v for_o error_n and_o many_o decent_a useful_a order_n custom_n ceremony_n and_o necessary_a act_n of_o discipline_n have_v be_v cry_v down_o as_o superstitious_a idolatrous_a and_o antichristian_a and_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o religion_n itself_o be_v almost_o whole_o turn_v out_o of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o style_n of_o popery_n nor_o have_v that_o piety_n and_o integrity_n of_o life_n which_o be_v require_v of_o particular_a person_n escape_v better_a but_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o puritanism_n have_v be_v too_o much_o banish_v from_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o man_n for_o fear_v of_o be_v brand_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n faction_n and_o separation_n 10_o he_o that_o will_v not_o unaware_o headlong_o himself_o into_o the_o gulf_n of_o error_n must_v not_o presume_v upon_o any_o extraordinary_a infusion_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n from_o above_o but_o in_o all_o humility_n wait_v upon_o god_n in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n and_o the_o careful_a improvement_n of_o what_o gift_n and_o grace_n he_o have_v already_o receive_v it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o heretic_n and_o hypocrite_n say_v a_o learned_a man_n c●st_n joh._n c●st_n ever_o to_o pretend_v to_o high_a light_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o find_v new_a and_o unheard_a of_o way_n of_o walk_v with_o god_n slight_v all_o that_o be_v common_a though_o never_o so_o commendable_a and_o catch_v at_o all_o that_o be_v curious_a though_o never_o so_o dangerous_a and_o thus_o they_o lose_v themselves_o in_o their_o chimerical_a conception_n and_o pretend_v to_o refine_v ancient_a piety_n and_o truth_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o secret_a pride_n and_o presumption_n and_o grasp_v nothing_o but_o froth_n and_o vanity_n that_o there_o be_v such_o thing_n as_o ecstasy_n and_o more_o than_o ordinary_a ravishment_n of_o spirit_n and_o infusion_n of_o divine_a gift_n and_o qualification_n be_v not_o doubt_v but_o such_o supereminence_n only_o superexcellent_a soul_n be_v capable_a of_o neither_o yet_o be_v they_o afford_v to_o all_o pious_a devout_a and_o heavenly_a mind_a person_n that_o so_o none_o may_v presume_v to_o depend_v upon_o they_o but_o that_o every_o man_n shall_v keep_v his_o station_n and_o walk_v humble_o with_o his_o god_n not_o rely_v upon_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n in_o the_o neglect_n of_o ordinary_a mean_n which_o be_v in_o many_o respect_v destructive_a and_o dangerous_a as_o in_o the_o former_a treatise_n and_o although_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o the_o conversion_n of_o every_o man_n to_o the_o truth_n be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v therefore_o sudden_a and_o at_o one_o instant_a or_o moment_n of_o time_n beget_v and_o wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n yet_o notwithstanding_o our_o progress_n towards_o perfection_n and_o bliss_n in_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o holiness_n go_v on_o step_n by_o step_n